- The Project Gutenberg EBook of Sense and Sensibility, by Jane Austen
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
- Title: Sense and Sensibility
- Author: Jane Austen
- Release Date: May 25, 2008 [EBook #161]
- [Last updated: February 11, 2015]
- Language: English
- *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SENSE AND SENSIBILITY ***
- Special thanks are due to Sharon Partridge for extensive
- proofreading and correction of this etext.
- SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
- by Jane Austen
- (1811)
- CHAPTER 1
- The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex. Their estate
- was large, and their residence was at Norland Park, in the centre of
- their property, where, for many generations, they had lived in so
- respectable a manner as to engage the general good opinion of their
- surrounding acquaintance. The late owner of this estate was a single
- man, who lived to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his
- life, had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister. But her
- death, which happened ten years before his own, produced a great
- alteration in his home; for to supply her loss, he invited and received
- into his house the family of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal
- inheritor of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended to
- bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece, and their
- children, the old Gentleman's days were comfortably spent. His
- attachment to them all increased. The constant attention of Mr. and
- Mrs. Henry Dashwood to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from
- interest, but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
- comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness of the
- children added a relish to his existence.
- By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one son: by his present
- lady, three daughters. The son, a steady respectable young man, was
- amply provided for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
- and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age. By his own
- marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards, he added to his
- wealth. To him therefore the succession to the Norland estate was not
- so really important as to his sisters; for their fortune, independent
- of what might arise to them from their father's inheriting that
- property, could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
- father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal; for the
- remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was also secured to her
- child, and he had only a life-interest in it.
- The old gentleman died: his will was read, and like almost every other
- will, gave as much disappointment as pleasure. He was neither so
- unjust, nor so ungrateful, as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but
- he left it to him on such terms as destroyed half the value of the
- bequest. Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his wife
- and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to his son, and his
- son's son, a child of four years old, it was secured, in such a way, as
- to leave to himself no power of providing for those who were most dear
- to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge on the estate, or
- by any sale of its valuable woods. The whole was tied up for the
- benefit of this child, who, in occasional visits with his father and
- mother at Norland, had so far gained on the affections of his uncle, by
- such attractions as are by no means unusual in children of two or three
- years old; an imperfect articulation, an earnest desire of having his
- own way, many cunning tricks, and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh
- all the value of all the attention which, for years, he had received
- from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to be unkind, however,
- and, as a mark of his affection for the three girls, he left them a
- thousand pounds a-piece.
- Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe; but his temper was
- cheerful and sanguine; and he might reasonably hope to live many years,
- and by living economically, lay by a considerable sum from the produce
- of an estate already large, and capable of almost immediate
- improvement. But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was
- his only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer; and ten
- thousand pounds, including the late legacies, was all that remained for
- his widow and daughters.
- His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known, and to him Mr.
- Dashwood recommended, with all the strength and urgency which illness
- could command, the interest of his mother-in-law and sisters.
- Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the rest of the
- family; but he was affected by a recommendation of such a nature at
- such a time, and he promised to do every thing in his power to make
- them comfortable. His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
- and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how much there might
- prudently be in his power to do for them.
- He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to be rather cold hearted
- and rather selfish is to be ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well
- respected; for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge of
- his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman, he might
- have been made still more respectable than he was:--he might even have
- been made amiable himself; for he was very young when he married, and
- very fond of his wife. But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature
- of himself;--more narrow-minded and selfish.
- When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated within himself to
- increase the fortunes of his sisters by the present of a thousand
- pounds a-piece. He then really thought himself equal to it. The
- prospect of four thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
- besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune, warmed his
- heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.-- "Yes, he would give
- them three thousand pounds: it would be liberal and handsome! It would
- be enough to make them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he
- could spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."-- He
- thought of it all day long, and for many days successively, and he did
- not repent.
- No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John Dashwood,
- without sending any notice of her intention to her mother-in-law,
- arrived with her child and their attendants. No one could dispute her
- right to come; the house was her husband's from the moment of his
- father's decease; but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the
- greater, and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only common
- feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--but in HER mind there was
- a sense of honor so keen, a generosity so romantic, that any offence of
- the kind, by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source of
- immovable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never been a favourite with
- any of her husband's family; but she had had no opportunity, till the
- present, of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort of
- other people she could act when occasion required it.
- So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious behaviour, and so
- earnestly did she despise her daughter-in-law for it, that, on the
- arrival of the latter, she would have quitted the house for ever, had
- not the entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect on the
- propriety of going, and her own tender love for all her three children
- determined her afterwards to stay, and for their sakes avoid a breach
- with their brother.
- Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was so effectual, possessed
- a strength of understanding, and coolness of judgment, which qualified
- her, though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother, and
- enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage of them all,
- that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood which must generally have led
- to imprudence. She had an excellent heart;--her disposition was
- affectionate, and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
- them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn; and which
- one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
- Marianne's abilities were, in many respects, quite equal to Elinor's.
- She was sensible and clever; but eager in everything: her sorrows, her
- joys, could have no moderation. She was generous, amiable,
- interesting: she was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
- her and her mother was strikingly great.
- Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her sister's sensibility; but
- by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued and cherished. They encouraged each
- other now in the violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
- which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed, was sought
- for, was created again and again. They gave themselves up wholly to
- their sorrow, seeking increase of wretchedness in every reflection that
- could afford it, and resolved against ever admitting consolation in
- future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still she could
- struggle, she could exert herself. She could consult with her brother,
- could receive her sister-in-law on her arrival, and treat her with
- proper attention; and could strive to rouse her mother to similar
- exertion, and encourage her to similar forbearance.
- Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored, well-disposed girl; but
- as she had already imbibed a good deal of Marianne's romance, without
- having much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair to equal
- her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
- CHAPTER 2
- Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress of Norland; and her
- mother and sisters-in-law were degraded to the condition of visitors.
- As such, however, they were treated by her with quiet civility; and by
- her husband with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
- beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really pressed them,
- with some earnestness, to consider Norland as their home; and, as no
- plan appeared so eligible to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she
- could accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood, his
- invitation was accepted.
- A continuance in a place where everything reminded her of former
- delight, was exactly what suited her mind. In seasons of cheerfulness,
- no temper could be more cheerful than hers, or possess, in a greater
- degree, that sanguine expectation of happiness which is happiness
- itself. But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
- and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was beyond alloy.
- Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her husband intended
- to do for his sisters. To take three thousand pounds from the fortune
- of their dear little boy would be impoverishing him to the most
- dreadful degree. She begged him to think again on the subject. How
- could he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only child too,
- of so large a sum? And what possible claim could the Miss Dashwoods,
- who were related to him only by half blood, which she considered as no
- relationship at all, have on his generosity to so large an amount. It
- was very well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
- between the children of any man by different marriages; and why was he
- to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry, by giving away all his
- money to his half sisters?
- "It was my father's last request to me," replied her husband, "that I
- should assist his widow and daughters."
- "He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say; ten to one but he
- was light-headed at the time. Had he been in his right senses, he
- could not have thought of such a thing as begging you to give away half
- your fortune from your own child."
- "He did not stipulate for any particular sum, my dear Fanny; he only
- requested me, in general terms, to assist them, and make their
- situation more comfortable than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it
- would have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself. He could
- hardly suppose I should neglect them. But as he required the promise,
- I could not do less than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
- The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed. Something
- must be done for them whenever they leave Norland and settle in a new
- home."
- "Well, then, LET something be done for them; but THAT something need
- not be three thousand pounds. Consider," she added, "that when the
- money is once parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will
- marry, and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could be restored
- to our poor little boy--"
- "Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely, "that would make
- great difference. The time may come when Harry will regret that so
- large a sum was parted with. If he should have a numerous family, for
- instance, it would be a very convenient addition."
- "To be sure it would."
- "Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties, if the sum were
- diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds would be a prodigious
- increase to their fortunes!"
- "Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth would do half so
- much for his sisters, even if REALLY his sisters! And as it is--only
- half blood!--But you have such a generous spirit!"
- "I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied. "One had rather,
- on such occasions, do too much than too little. No one, at least, can
- think I have not done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
- expect more."
- "There is no knowing what THEY may expect," said the lady, "but we are
- not to think of their expectations: the question is, what you can
- afford to do."
- "Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five hundred pounds
- a-piece. As it is, without any addition of mine, they will each have
- about three thousand pounds on their mother's death--a very comfortable
- fortune for any young woman."
- "To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that they can want no
- addition at all. They will have ten thousand pounds divided amongst
- them. If they marry, they will be sure of doing well, and if they do
- not, they may all live very comfortably together on the interest of ten
- thousand pounds."
- "That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether, upon the
- whole, it would not be more advisable to do something for their mother
- while she lives, rather than for them--something of the annuity kind I
- mean.--My sisters would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
- A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
- His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving her consent to this
- plan.
- "To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with fifteen hundred
- pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood should live fifteen years
- we shall be completely taken in."
- "Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot be worth half that
- purchase."
- "Certainly not; but if you observe, people always live for ever when
- there is an annuity to be paid them; and she is very stout and healthy,
- and hardly forty. An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
- and over every year, and there is no getting rid of it. You are not
- aware of what you are doing. I have known a great deal of the trouble
- of annuities; for my mother was clogged with the payment of three to
- old superannuated servants by my father's will, and it is amazing how
- disagreeable she found it. Twice every year these annuities were to be
- paid; and then there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then
- one of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned out to be
- no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it. Her income was not her
- own, she said, with such perpetual claims on it; and it was the more
- unkind in my father, because, otherwise, the money would have been
- entirely at my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever. It
- has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am sure I would
- not pin myself down to the payment of one for all the world."
- "It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood, "to have
- those kind of yearly drains on one's income. One's fortune, as your
- mother justly says, is NOT one's own. To be tied down to the regular
- payment of such a sum, on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it
- takes away one's independence."
- "Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it. They think
- themselves secure, you do no more than what is expected, and it raises
- no gratitude at all. If I were you, whatever I did should be done at
- my own discretion entirely. I would not bind myself to allow them any
- thing yearly. It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a
- hundred, or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
- "I believe you are right, my love; it will be better that there should
- be no annuity in the case; whatever I may give them occasionally will
- be of far greater assistance than a yearly allowance, because they
- would only enlarge their style of living if they felt sure of a larger
- income, and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end of the
- year. It will certainly be much the best way. A present of fifty
- pounds, now and then, will prevent their ever being distressed for
- money, and will, I think, be amply discharging my promise to my father."
- "To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth, I am convinced within
- myself that your father had no idea of your giving them any money at
- all. The assistance he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might
- be reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking out for a
- comfortable small house for them, helping them to move their things,
- and sending them presents of fish and game, and so forth, whenever they
- are in season. I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
- it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did. Do but consider,
- my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively comfortable your mother-in-law
- and her daughters may live on the interest of seven thousand pounds,
- besides the thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which
- brings them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course, they will
- pay their mother for their board out of it. Altogether, they will have
- five hundred a-year amongst them, and what on earth can four women want
- for more than that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
- be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses, and hardly
- any servants; they will keep no company, and can have no expenses of
- any kind! Only conceive how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a
- year! I am sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it; and as
- to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think of it. They will
- be much more able to give YOU something."
- "Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you are perfectly right.
- My father certainly could mean nothing more by his request to me than
- what you say. I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
- my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness to them as you
- have described. When my mother removes into another house my services
- shall be readily given to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little
- present of furniture too may be acceptable then."
- "Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however, ONE thing
- must be considered. When your father and mother moved to Norland,
- though the furniture of Stanhill was sold, all the china, plate, and
- linen was saved, and is now left to your mother. Her house will
- therefore be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
- "That is a material consideration undoubtedly. A valuable legacy
- indeed! And yet some of the plate would have been a very pleasant
- addition to our own stock here."
- "Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice as handsome as what
- belongs to this house. A great deal too handsome, in my opinion, for
- any place THEY can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
- Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this: that you owe no
- particular gratitude to him, nor attention to his wishes; for we very
- well know that if he could, he would have left almost everything in the
- world to THEM."
- This argument was irresistible. It gave to his intentions whatever of
- decision was wanting before; and he finally resolved, that it would be
- absolutely unnecessary, if not highly indecorous, to do more for the
- widow and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly acts as
- his own wife pointed out.
- CHAPTER 3
- Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months; not from any
- disinclination to move when the sight of every well known spot ceased
- to raise the violent emotion which it produced for a while; for when
- her spirits began to revive, and her mind became capable of some other
- exertion than that of heightening its affliction by melancholy
- remembrances, she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her
- inquiries for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland; for
- to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible. But she could
- hear of no situation that at once answered her notions of comfort and
- ease, and suited the prudence of her eldest daughter, whose steadier
- judgment rejected several houses as too large for their income, which
- her mother would have approved.
- Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the solemn promise on
- the part of his son in their favour, which gave comfort to his last
- earthly reflections. She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no
- more than he had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her
- daughters' sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
- persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would support her in
- affluence. For their brother's sake, too, for the sake of his own
- heart, she rejoiced; and she reproached herself for being unjust to his
- merit before, in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
- behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that their welfare
- was dear to him, and, for a long time, she firmly relied on the
- liberality of his intentions.
- The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance, felt for
- her daughter-in-law, was very much increased by the farther knowledge
- of her character, which half a year's residence in her family afforded;
- and perhaps in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
- affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might have found it
- impossible to have lived together so long, had not a particular
- circumstance occurred to give still greater eligibility, according to
- the opinions of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
- This circumstance was a growing attachment between her eldest girl and
- the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood, a gentleman-like and pleasing young
- man, who was introduced to their acquaintance soon after his sister's
- establishment at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part of
- his time there.
- Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from motives of
- interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son of a man who had died
- very rich; and some might have repressed it from motives of prudence,
- for, except a trifling sum, the whole of his fortune depended on the
- will of his mother. But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either
- consideration. It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
- that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned the partiality.
- It was contrary to every doctrine of hers that difference of fortune
- should keep any couple asunder who were attracted by resemblance of
- disposition; and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged by
- every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
- Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good opinion by any
- peculiar graces of person or address. He was not handsome, and his
- manners required intimacy to make them pleasing. He was too diffident
- to do justice to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
- his behaviour gave every indication of an open, affectionate heart.
- His understanding was good, and his education had given it solid
- improvement. But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition to
- answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed to see him
- distinguished--as--they hardly knew what. They wanted him to make a
- fine figure in the world in some manner or other. His mother wished to
- interest him in political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to
- see him connected with some of the great men of the day. Mrs. John
- Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while, till one of these
- superior blessings could be attained, it would have quieted her
- ambition to see him driving a barouche. But Edward had no turn for
- great men or barouches. All his wishes centered in domestic comfort
- and the quiet of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
- who was more promising.
- Edward had been staying several weeks in the house before he engaged
- much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention; for she was, at that time, in such
- affliction as rendered her careless of surrounding objects. She saw
- only that he was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it. He
- did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by ill-timed conversation.
- She was first called to observe and approve him farther, by a
- reflection which Elinor chanced one day to make on the difference
- between him and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
- most forcibly to her mother.
- "It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike Fanny is enough.
- It implies everything amiable. I love him already."
- "I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you know more of him."
- "Like him!" replied her mother with a smile. "I feel no sentiment of
- approbation inferior to love."
- "You may esteem him."
- "I have never yet known what it was to separate esteem and love."
- Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him. Her manners
- were attaching, and soon banished his reserve. She speedily
- comprehended all his merits; the persuasion of his regard for Elinor
- perhaps assisted her penetration; but she really felt assured of his
- worth: and even that quietness of manner, which militated against all
- her established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be, was no
- longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be warm and his temper
- affectionate.
- No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love in his behaviour to
- Elinor, than she considered their serious attachment as certain, and
- looked forward to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
- "In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she, "Elinor will, in all
- probability be settled for life. We shall miss her; but SHE will be
- happy."
- "Oh! Mama, how shall we do without her?"
- "My love, it will be scarcely a separation. We shall live within a few
- miles of each other, and shall meet every day of our lives. You will
- gain a brother, a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest
- opinion in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave, Marianne;
- do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
- "Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it with some surprise.
- Edward is very amiable, and I love him tenderly. But yet--he is not
- the kind of young man--there is something wanting--his figure is not
- striking; it has none of that grace which I should expect in the man
- who could seriously attach my sister. His eyes want all that spirit,
- that fire, which at once announce virtue and intelligence. And besides
- all this, I am afraid, Mama, he has no real taste. Music seems
- scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's drawings very
- much, it is not the admiration of a person who can understand their
- worth. It is evident, in spite of his frequent attention to her while
- she draws, that in fact he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as
- a lover, not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters must be
- united. I could not be happy with a man whose taste did not in every
- point coincide with my own. He must enter into all my feelings; the
- same books, the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how
- spiritless, how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
- I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it with so much
- composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it. I could hardly keep my
- seat. To hear those beautiful lines which have frequently almost
- driven me wild, pronounced with such impenetrable calmness, such
- dreadful indifference!"
- "He would certainly have done more justice to simple and elegant prose.
- I thought so at the time; but you WOULD give him Cowper."
- "Nay, Mama, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--but we must allow
- for difference of taste. Elinor has not my feelings, and therefore she
- may overlook it, and be happy with him. But it would have broke MY
- heart, had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
- Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced that I
- shall never see a man whom I can really love. I require so much! He
- must have all Edward's virtues, and his person and manners must
- ornament his goodness with every possible charm."
- "Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen. It is yet too early in
- life to despair of such a happiness. Why should you be less fortunate
- than your mother? In one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your
- destiny be different from hers!"
- CHAPTER 4
- "What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne, "that Edward should have no
- taste for drawing."
- "No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should you think so? He
- does not draw himself, indeed, but he has great pleasure in seeing the
- performances of other people, and I assure you he is by no means
- deficient in natural taste, though he has not had opportunities of
- improving it. Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he
- would have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment in such
- matters so much, that he is always unwilling to give his opinion on any
- picture; but he has an innate propriety and simplicity of taste, which
- in general direct him perfectly right."
- Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more on the subject; but
- the kind of approbation which Elinor described as excited in him by the
- drawings of other people, was very far from that rapturous delight,
- which, in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
- smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured her sister for that
- blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
- "I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not consider him as
- deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think I may say that you cannot,
- for your behaviour to him is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your
- opinion, I am sure you could never be civil to him."
- Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would not wound the feelings of
- her sister on any account, and yet to say what she did not believe was
- impossible. At length she replied:
- "Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him is not in every thing
- equal to your sense of his merits. I have not had so many
- opportunities of estimating the minuter propensities of his mind, his
- inclinations and tastes, as you have; but I have the highest opinion in
- the world of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
- worthy and amiable."
- "I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile, "that his dearest friends
- could not be dissatisfied with such commendation as that. I do not
- perceive how you could express yourself more warmly."
- Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
- "Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor, "no one can, I
- think, be in doubt, who has seen him often enough to engage him in
- unreserved conversation. The excellence of his understanding and his
- principles can be concealed only by that shyness which too often keeps
- him silent. You know enough of him to do justice to his solid worth.
- But of his minuter propensities, as you call them you have from
- peculiar circumstances been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I
- have been at times thrown a good deal together, while you have been
- wholly engrossed on the most affectionate principle by my mother. I
- have seen a great deal of him, have studied his sentiments and heard
- his opinion on subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole, I
- venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed, enjoyment of books
- exceedingly great, his imagination lively, his observation just and
- correct, and his taste delicate and pure. His abilities in every
- respect improve as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
- At first sight, his address is certainly not striking; and his person
- can hardly be called handsome, till the expression of his eyes, which
- are uncommonly good, and the general sweetness of his countenance, is
- perceived. At present, I know him so well, that I think him really
- handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you, Marianne?"
- "I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I do not now. When
- you tell me to love him as a brother, I shall no more see imperfection
- in his face, than I now do in his heart."
- Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for the warmth she
- had been betrayed into, in speaking of him. She felt that Edward stood
- very high in her opinion. She believed the regard to be mutual; but
- she required greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction of
- their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that what Marianne and her
- mother conjectured one moment, they believed the next--that with them,
- to wish was to hope, and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain
- the real state of the case to her sister.
- "I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think very highly of
- him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
- Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
- "Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh! worse than
- cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise. Use those words again, and I
- will leave the room this moment."
- Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me," said she; "and be assured
- that I meant no offence to you, by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my
- own feelings. Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
- believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the suspicion--the
- hope of his affection for me may warrant, without imprudence or folly.
- But farther than this you must not believe. I am by no means assured
- of his regard for me. There are moments when the extent of it seems
- doubtful; and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder at
- my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality, by
- believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart I feel
- little--scarcely any doubt of his preference. But there are other
- points to be considered besides his inclination. He is very far from
- being independent. What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from
- Fanny's occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have never
- been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very much mistaken if
- Edward is not himself aware that there would be many difficulties in
- his way, if he were to wish to marry a woman who had not either a great
- fortune or high rank."
- Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination of her mother
- and herself had outstripped the truth.
- "And you really are not engaged to him!" said she. "Yet it certainly
- soon will happen. But two advantages will proceed from this delay. I
- shall not lose you so soon, and Edward will have greater opportunity of
- improving that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must be
- so indispensably necessary to your future felicity. Oh! if he should
- be so far stimulated by your genius as to learn to draw himself, how
- delightful it would be!"
- Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister. She could not
- consider her partiality for Edward in so prosperous a state as Marianne
- had believed it. There was, at times, a want of spirits about him
- which, if it did not denote indifference, spoke of something almost as
- unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him to feel it, need not
- give him more than inquietude. It would not be likely to produce that
- dejection of mind which frequently attended him. A more reasonable
- cause might be found in the dependent situation which forbade the
- indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother neither behaved
- to him so as to make his home comfortable at present, nor to give him
- any assurance that he might form a home for himself, without strictly
- attending to her views for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge
- as this, it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject. She
- was far from depending on that result of his preference of her, which
- her mother and sister still considered as certain. Nay, the longer
- they were together the more doubtful seemed the nature of his regard;
- and sometimes, for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
- than friendship.
- But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough, when perceived
- by his sister, to make her uneasy, and at the same time, (which was
- still more common,) to make her uncivil. She took the first
- opportunity of affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
- her so expressively of her brother's great expectations, of Mrs.
- Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should marry well, and of the
- danger attending any young woman who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that
- Mrs. Dashwood could neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to
- be calm. She gave her an answer which marked her contempt, and
- instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might be the
- inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal, her beloved Elinor
- should not be exposed another week to such insinuations.
- In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered to her from the
- post, which contained a proposal particularly well timed. It was the
- offer of a small house, on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of
- her own, a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire. The
- letter was from this gentleman himself, and written in the true spirit
- of friendly accommodation. He understood that she was in need of a
- dwelling; and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
- he assured her that everything should be done to it which she might
- think necessary, if the situation pleased her. He earnestly pressed
- her, after giving the particulars of the house and garden, to come with
- her daughters to Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from
- whence she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the houses
- were in the same parish, could, by any alteration, be made comfortable
- to her. He seemed really anxious to accommodate them and the whole of
- his letter was written in so friendly a style as could not fail of
- giving pleasure to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
- suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her nearer
- connections. She needed no time for deliberation or inquiry. Her
- resolution was formed as she read. The situation of Barton, in a
- county so far distant from Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours
- before, would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
- possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its first
- recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland was no longer an
- evil; it was an object of desire; it was a blessing, in comparison of
- the misery of continuing her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for
- ever from that beloved place would be less painful than to inhabit or
- visit it while such a woman was its mistress. She instantly wrote Sir
- John Middleton her acknowledgment of his kindness, and her acceptance
- of his proposal; and then hastened to shew both letters to her
- daughters, that she might be secure of their approbation before her
- answer were sent.
- Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent for them to settle
- at some distance from Norland, than immediately amongst their present
- acquaintance. On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
- her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire. The house, too, as
- described by Sir John, was on so simple a scale, and the rent so
- uncommonly moderate, as to leave her no right of objection on either
- point; and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought any charm
- to her fancy, though it was a removal from the vicinity of Norland
- beyond her wishes, she made no attempt to dissuade her mother from
- sending a letter of acquiescence.
- CHAPTER 5
- No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood indulged herself
- in the pleasure of announcing to her son-in-law and his wife that she
- was provided with a house, and should incommode them no longer than till
- every thing were ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with
- surprise. Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly hoped
- that she would not be settled far from Norland. She had great
- satisfaction in replying that she was going into Devonshire.--Edward
- turned hastily towards her, on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise
- and concern, which required no explanation to her, repeated,
- "Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence! And to
- what part of it?" She explained the situation. It was within four miles
- northward of Exeter.
- "It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope to see many of my
- friends in it. A room or two can easily be added; and if my friends
- find no difficulty in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will
- find none in accommodating them."
- She concluded with a very kind invitation to Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood
- to visit her at Barton; and to Edward she gave one with still greater
- affection. Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
- made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than was
- unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect on her in that
- point to which it principally tended. To separate Edward and Elinor
- was as far from being her object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs.
- John Dashwood, by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally
- she disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
- Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again how exceedingly sorry
- he was that she had taken a house at such a distance from Norland as to
- prevent his being of any service to her in removing her furniture. He
- really felt conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very
- exertion to which he had limited the performance of his promise to his
- father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.-- The furniture
- was all sent around by water. It chiefly consisted of household linen,
- plate, china, and books, with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's.
- Mrs. John Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could not
- help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income would be so
- trifling in comparison with their own, she should have any handsome
- article of furniture.
- Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was ready furnished,
- and she might have immediate possession. No difficulty arose on either
- side in the agreement; and she waited only for the disposal of her
- effects at Norland, and to determine her future household, before she
- set off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid in the
- performance of everything that interested her, was soon done.--The
- horses which were left her by her husband had been sold soon after his
- death, and an opportunity now offering of disposing of her carriage,
- she agreed to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her eldest
- daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she consulted only her
- own wishes, she would have kept it; but the discretion of Elinor
- prevailed. HER wisdom too limited the number of their servants to
- three; two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided from
- amongst those who had formed their establishment at Norland.
- The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately into Devonshire,
- to prepare the house for their mistress's arrival; for as Lady
- Middleton was entirely unknown to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going
- directly to the cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she
- relied so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house, as to
- feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she entered it as her own.
- Her eagerness to be gone from Norland was preserved from diminution by
- the evident satisfaction of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her
- removal; a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
- under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure. Now was the
- time when her son-in-law's promise to his father might with particular
- propriety be fulfilled. Since he had neglected to do it on first
- coming to the estate, their quitting his house might be looked on as
- the most suitable period for its accomplishment. But Mrs. Dashwood
- began shortly to give over every hope of the kind, and to be convinced,
- from the general drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended
- no farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland. He so
- frequently talked of the increasing expenses of housekeeping, and of
- the perpetual demands upon his purse, which a man of any consequence in
- the world was beyond calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to
- stand in need of more money himself than to have any design of giving
- money away.
- In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir John Middleton's
- first letter to Norland, every thing was so far settled in their future
- abode as to enable Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their
- journey.
- Many were the tears shed by them in their last adieus to a place so
- much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!" said Marianne, as she wandered
- alone before the house, on the last evening of their being there; "when
- shall I cease to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
- happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing you from this
- spot, from whence perhaps I may view you no more!--And you, ye
- well-known trees!--but you will continue the same.--No leaf will decay
- because we are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
- can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same; unconscious
- of the pleasure or the regret you occasion, and insensible of any
- change in those who walk under your shade!--But who will remain to
- enjoy you?"
- CHAPTER 6
- The first part of their journey was performed in too melancholy a
- disposition to be otherwise than tedious and unpleasant. But as they
- drew towards the end of it, their interest in the appearance of a
- country which they were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view
- of Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness. It was a
- pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich in pasture. After winding
- along it for more than a mile, they reached their own house. A small
- green court was the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket
- gate admitted them into it.
- As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable and compact;
- but as a cottage it was defective, for the building was regular, the
- roof was tiled, the window shutters were not painted green, nor were
- the walls covered with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly
- through the house into the garden behind. On each side of the entrance
- was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square; and beyond them were the
- offices and the stairs. Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest
- of the house. It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
- In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but the tears
- which recollection called forth as they entered the house were soon
- dried away. They were cheered by the joy of the servants on their
- arrival, and each for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
- It was very early in September; the season was fine, and from first
- seeing the place under the advantage of good weather, they received an
- impression in its favour which was of material service in recommending
- it to their lasting approbation.
- The situation of the house was good. High hills rose immediately
- behind, and at no great distance on each side; some of which were open
- downs, the others cultivated and woody. The village of Barton was
- chiefly on one of these hills, and formed a pleasant view from the
- cottage windows. The prospect in front was more extensive; it
- commanded the whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
- The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated the valley in that
- direction; under another name, and in another course, it branched out
- again between two of the steepest of them.
- With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood was upon the
- whole well satisfied; for though her former style of life rendered many
- additions to the latter indispensable, yet to add and improve was a
- delight to her; and she had at this time ready money enough to supply
- all that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments. "As for the
- house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is too small for our family,
- but we will make ourselves tolerably comfortable for the present, as it
- is too late in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring, if I
- have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may think about
- building. These parlors are both too small for such parties of our
- friends as I hope to see often collected here; and I have some thoughts
- of throwing the passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the
- other, and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance; this,
- with a new drawing room which may be easily added, and a bed-chamber
- and garret above, will make it a very snug little cottage. I could
- wish the stairs were handsome. But one must not expect every thing;
- though I suppose it would be no difficult matter to widen them. I
- shall see how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring, and
- we will plan our improvements accordingly."
- In the mean time, till all these alterations could be made from the
- savings of an income of five hundred a-year by a woman who never saved
- in her life, they were wise enough to be contented with the house as it
- was; and each of them was busy in arranging their particular concerns,
- and endeavoring, by placing around them books and other possessions, to
- form themselves a home. Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and
- properly disposed of; and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls
- of their sitting room.
- In such employments as these they were interrupted soon after breakfast
- the next day by the entrance of their landlord, who called to welcome
- them to Barton, and to offer them every accommodation from his own
- house and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient. Sir
- John Middleton was a good looking man about forty. He had formerly
- visited at Stanhill, but it was too long for his young cousins to
- remember him. His countenance was thoroughly good-humoured; and his
- manners were as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
- seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort to be an
- object of real solicitude to him. He said much of his earnest desire
- of their living in the most sociable terms with his family, and pressed
- them so cordially to dine at Barton Park every day till they were
- better settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried to a
- point of perseverance beyond civility, they could not give offence.
- His kindness was not confined to words; for within an hour after he
- left them, a large basket full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from
- the park, which was followed before the end of the day by a present of
- game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their letters to and
- from the post for them, and would not be denied the satisfaction of
- sending them his newspaper every day.
- Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him, denoting her
- intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as she could be assured
- that her visit would be no inconvenience; and as this message was
- answered by an invitation equally polite, her ladyship was introduced
- to them the next day.
- They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on whom so much of
- their comfort at Barton must depend; and the elegance of her appearance
- was favourable to their wishes. Lady Middleton was not more than six
- or seven and twenty; her face was handsome, her figure tall and
- striking, and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
- which her husband's wanted. But they would have been improved by some
- share of his frankness and warmth; and her visit was long enough to
- detract something from their first admiration, by shewing that, though
- perfectly well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say for
- herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
- Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John was very chatty, and
- Lady Middleton had taken the wise precaution of bringing with her their
- eldest child, a fine little boy about six years old, by which means
- there was one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case of
- extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age, admire his beauty,
- and ask him questions which his mother answered for him, while he hung
- about her and held down his head, to the great surprise of her
- ladyship, who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he could
- make noise enough at home. On every formal visit a child ought to be
- of the party, by way of provision for discourse. In the present case
- it took up ten minutes to determine whether the boy were most like his
- father or mother, and in what particular he resembled either, for of
- course every body differed, and every body was astonished at the
- opinion of the others.
- An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods of debating on the
- rest of the children, as Sir John would not leave the house without
- securing their promise of dining at the park the next day.
- CHAPTER 7
- Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage. The ladies had
- passed near it in their way along the valley, but it was screened from
- their view at home by the projection of a hill. The house was large
- and handsome; and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
- and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification, the latter
- for that of his lady. They were scarcely ever without some friends
- staying with them in the house, and they kept more company of every
- kind than any other family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to
- the happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper and outward
- behaviour, they strongly resembled each other in that total want of
- talent and taste which confined their employments, unconnected with
- such as society produced, within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a
- sportsman, Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
- humoured her children; and these were their only resources. Lady
- Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her children all the
- year round, while Sir John's independent employments were in existence
- only half the time. Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
- supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education; supported the
- good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise to the good breeding of his
- wife.
- Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance of her table, and of
- all her domestic arrangements; and from this kind of vanity was her
- greatest enjoyment in any of their parties. But Sir John's
- satisfaction in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
- about him more young people than his house would hold, and the noisier
- they were the better was he pleased. He was a blessing to all the
- juvenile part of the neighbourhood, for in summer he was for ever
- forming parties to eat cold ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter
- his private balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
- suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
- The arrival of a new family in the country was always a matter of joy
- to him, and in every point of view he was charmed with the inhabitants
- he had now procured for his cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were
- young, pretty, and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good
- opinion; for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could want to
- make her mind as captivating as her person. The friendliness of his
- disposition made him happy in accommodating those, whose situation
- might be considered, in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In
- showing kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
- of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only in his
- cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman; for a sportsman,
- though he esteems only those of his sex who are sportsmen likewise, is
- not often desirous of encouraging their taste by admitting them to a
- residence within his own manor.
- Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door of the house by
- Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton Park with unaffected sincerity;
- and as he attended them to the drawing room repeated to the young
- ladies the concern which the same subject had drawn from him the day
- before, at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them. They
- would see, he said, only one gentleman there besides himself; a
- particular friend who was staying at the park, but who was neither very
- young nor very gay. He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of
- the party, and could assure them it should never happen so again. He
- had been to several families that morning in hopes of procuring some
- addition to their number, but it was moonlight and every body was full
- of engagements. Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
- within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful agreeable woman,
- he hoped the young ladies would not find it so very dull as they might
- imagine. The young ladies, as well as their mother, were perfectly
- satisfied with having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
- no more.
- Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a good-humoured, merry,
- fat, elderly woman, who talked a great deal, seemed very happy, and
- rather vulgar. She was full of jokes and laughter, and before dinner
- was over had said many witty things on the subject of lovers and
- husbands; hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
- and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not. Marianne was
- vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned her eyes towards Elinor
- to see how she bore these attacks, with an earnestness which gave
- Elinor far more pain than could arise from such common-place raillery
- as Mrs. Jennings's.
- Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no more adapted by
- resemblance of manner to be his friend, than Lady Middleton was to be
- his wife, or Mrs. Jennings to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was
- silent and grave. His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
- of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret an absolute old
- bachelor, for he was on the wrong side of five and thirty; but though
- his face was not handsome, his countenance was sensible, and his
- address was particularly gentlemanlike.
- There was nothing in any of the party which could recommend them as
- companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold insipidity of Lady Middleton
- was so particularly repulsive, that in comparison of it the gravity of
- Colonel Brandon, and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
- mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed to be roused to
- enjoyment only by the entrance of her four noisy children after dinner,
- who pulled her about, tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of
- discourse except what related to themselves.
- In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical, she was
- invited to play. The instrument was unlocked, every body prepared to
- be charmed, and Marianne, who sang very well, at their request went
- through the chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
- the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain ever since in
- the same position on the pianoforte, for her ladyship had celebrated
- that event by giving up music, although by her mother's account, she
- had played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
- Marianne's performance was highly applauded. Sir John was loud in his
- admiration at the end of every song, and as loud in his conversation
- with the others while every song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently
- called him to order, wondered how any one's attention could be diverted
- from music for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
- which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone, of all the
- party, heard her without being in raptures. He paid her only the
- compliment of attention; and she felt a respect for him on the
- occasion, which the others had reasonably forfeited by their shameless
- want of taste. His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
- ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own, was
- estimable when contrasted against the horrible insensibility of the
- others; and she was reasonable enough to allow that a man of five and
- thirty might well have outlived all acuteness of feeling and every
- exquisite power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make every
- allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life which humanity
- required.
- CHAPTER 8
- Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure. She had only two
- daughters, both of whom she had lived to see respectably married, and
- she had now therefore nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the
- world. In the promotion of this object she was zealously active, as
- far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity of projecting
- weddings among all the young people of her acquaintance. She was
- remarkably quick in the discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the
- advantage of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young lady by
- insinuations of her power over such a young man; and this kind of
- discernment enabled her soon after her arrival at Barton decisively to
- pronounce that Colonel Brandon was very much in love with Marianne
- Dashwood. She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first evening
- of their being together, from his listening so attentively while she
- sang to them; and when the visit was returned by the Middletons' dining
- at the cottage, the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
- It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it. It would be an
- excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE was handsome. Mrs. Jennings
- had been anxious to see Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her
- connection with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge; and she
- was always anxious to get a good husband for every pretty girl.
- The immediate advantage to herself was by no means inconsiderable, for
- it supplied her with endless jokes against them both. At the park she
- laughed at the colonel, and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former
- her raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
- perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at first
- incomprehensible; and when its object was understood, she hardly knew
- whether most to laugh at its absurdity, or censure its impertinence,
- for she considered it as an unfeeling reflection on the colonel's
- advanced years, and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
- Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years younger than
- herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared to the youthful fancy of
- her daughter, ventured to clear Mrs. Jennings from the probability of
- wishing to throw ridicule on his age.
- "But at least, Mama, you cannot deny the absurdity of the accusation,
- though you may not think it intentionally ill-natured. Colonel Brandon
- is certainly younger than Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY
- father; and if he were ever animated enough to be in love, must have
- long outlived every sensation of the kind. It is too ridiculous! When
- is a man to be safe from such wit, if age and infirmity will not
- protect him?"
- "Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon infirm? I can
- easily suppose that his age may appear much greater to you than to my
- mother; but you can hardly deceive yourself as to his having the use of
- his limbs!"
- "Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism? and is not that the
- commonest infirmity of declining life?"
- "My dearest child," said her mother, laughing, "at this rate you must
- be in continual terror of MY decay; and it must seem to you a miracle
- that my life has been extended to the advanced age of forty."
- "Mama, you are not doing me justice. I know very well that Colonel
- Brandon is not old enough to make his friends yet apprehensive of
- losing him in the course of nature. He may live twenty years longer.
- But thirty-five has nothing to do with matrimony."
- "Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had better not have
- any thing to do with matrimony together. But if there should by any
- chance happen to be a woman who is single at seven and twenty, I should
- not think Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
- marrying HER."
- "A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne, after pausing a moment,
- "can never hope to feel or inspire affection again, and if her home be
- uncomfortable, or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might bring
- herself to submit to the offices of a nurse, for the sake of the
- provision and security of a wife. In his marrying such a woman
- therefore there would be nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of
- convenience, and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would be
- no marriage at all, but that would be nothing. To me it would seem
- only a commercial exchange, in which each wished to be benefited at the
- expense of the other."
- "It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor, "to convince you that
- a woman of seven and twenty could feel for a man of thirty-five
- anything near enough to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
- But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and his wife to the
- constant confinement of a sick chamber, merely because he chanced to
- complain yesterday (a very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in
- one of his shoulders."
- "But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne; "and with me a
- flannel waistcoat is invariably connected with aches, cramps,
- rheumatisms, and every species of ailment that can afflict the old and
- the feeble."
- "Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not have despised him
- half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not there something interesting to
- you in the flushed cheek, hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
- Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room, "Mama," said
- Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject of illness which I cannot
- conceal from you. I am sure Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now
- been here almost a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but
- real indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay. What else
- can detain him at Norland?"
- "Had you any idea of his coming so soon?" said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had
- none. On the contrary, if I have felt any anxiety at all on the
- subject, it has been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want of
- pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation, when I talked of his
- coming to Barton. Does Elinor expect him already?"
- "I have never mentioned it to her, but of course she must."
- "I rather think you are mistaken, for when I was talking to her
- yesterday of getting a new grate for the spare bedchamber, she observed
- that there was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely that the
- room would be wanted for some time."
- "How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it! But the whole of
- their behaviour to each other has been unaccountable! How cold, how
- composed were their last adieus! How languid their conversation the
- last evening of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
- distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes of an
- affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave them purposely
- together in the course of the last morning, and each time did he most
- unaccountably follow me out of the room. And Elinor, in quitting
- Norland and Edward, cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is
- invariable. When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try to
- avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied in it?"
- CHAPTER 9
- The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable comfort to
- themselves. The house and the garden, with all the objects surrounding
- them, were now become familiar, and the ordinary pursuits which had
- given to Norland half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
- enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the loss of their
- father. Sir John Middleton, who called on them every day for the first
- fortnight, and who was not in the habit of seeing much occupation at
- home, could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
- Their visitors, except those from Barton Park, were not many; for, in
- spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties that they would mix more in the
- neighbourhood, and repeated assurances of his carriage being always at
- their service, the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
- wish of society for her children; and she was resolute in declining to
- visit any family beyond the distance of a walk. There were but few who
- could be so classed; and it was not all of them that were attainable.
- About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow winding
- valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton, as formerly
- described, the girls had, in one of their earliest walks, discovered an
- ancient respectable looking mansion which, by reminding them a little
- of Norland, interested their imagination and made them wish to be
- better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry, that its
- possessor, an elderly lady of very good character, was unfortunately
- too infirm to mix with the world, and never stirred from home.
- The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks. The high
- downs which invited them from almost every window of the cottage to
- seek the exquisite enjoyment of air on their summits, were a happy
- alternative when the dirt of the valleys beneath shut up their superior
- beauties; and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret one
- memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the partial sunshine
- of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear the confinement which the
- settled rain of the two preceding days had occasioned. The weather was
- not tempting enough to draw the two others from their pencil and their
- book, in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would be
- lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would be drawn off
- from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
- They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own penetration at
- every glimpse of blue sky; and when they caught in their faces the
- animating gales of a high south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears
- which had prevented their mother and Elinor from sharing such
- delightful sensations.
- "Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne, "superior to
- this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least two hours."
- Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against the wind, resisting
- it with laughing delight for about twenty minutes longer, when suddenly
- the clouds united over their heads, and a driving rain set full in
- their face.-- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though
- unwillingly, to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own
- house. One consolation however remained for them, to which the
- exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety; it was that of
- running with all possible speed down the steep side of the hill which
- led immediately to their garden gate.
- They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage, but a false step
- brought her suddenly to the ground; and Margaret, unable to stop
- herself to assist her, was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the
- bottom in safety.
- A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers playing round him, was
- passing up the hill and within a few yards of Marianne, when her
- accident happened. He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She
- had raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been twisted in
- her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand. The gentleman offered
- his services; and perceiving that her modesty declined what her
- situation rendered necessary, took her up in his arms without farther
- delay, and carried her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
- the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her directly
- into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived, and quitted not his
- hold till he had seated her in a chair in the parlour.
- Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at their entrance, and while
- the eyes of both were fixed on him with an evident wonder and a secret
- admiration which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized for
- his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner so frank and so
- graceful that his person, which was uncommonly handsome, received
- additional charms from his voice and expression. Had he been even old,
- ugly, and vulgar, the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
- have been secured by any act of attention to her child; but the
- influence of youth, beauty, and elegance, gave an interest to the
- action which came home to her feelings.
- She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness of address which
- always attended her, invited him to be seated. But this he declined,
- as he was dirty and wet. Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she
- was obliged. His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
- home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would allow him the
- honour of calling tomorrow to enquire after Miss Dashwood. The honour
- was readily granted, and he then departed, to make himself still more
- interesting, in the midst of a heavy rain.
- His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness were instantly the
- theme of general admiration, and the laugh which his gallantry raised
- against Marianne received particular spirit from his exterior
- attractions.-- Marianne herself had seen less of his Mama the
- rest, for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his lifting
- her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding him after their
- entering the house. But she had seen enough of him to join in all the
- admiration of the others, and with an energy which always adorned her
- praise. His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever drawn
- for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying her into the
- house with so little previous formality, there was a rapidity of
- thought which particularly recommended the action to her. Every
- circumstance belonging to him was interesting. His name was good, his
- residence was in their favourite village, and she soon found out that
- of all manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming. Her
- imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant, and the pain of a
- sprained ankle was disregarded.
- Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval of fair weather
- that morning allowed him to get out of doors; and Marianne's accident
- being related to him, he was eagerly asked whether he knew any
- gentleman of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
- "Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE in the country? That is good
- news however; I will ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on
- Thursday."
- "You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
- "Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here every year."
- "And what sort of a young man is he?"
- "As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you. A very decent
- shot, and there is not a bolder rider in England."
- "And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne, indignantly.
- "But what are his manners on more intimate acquaintance? What his
- pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
- Sir John was rather puzzled.
- "Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him as to all THAT.
- But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow, and has got the nicest
- little black bitch of a pointer I ever saw. Was she out with him
- today?"
- But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the colour of Mr.
- Willoughby's pointer, than he could describe to her the shades of his
- mind.
- "But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come from? Has he a
- house at Allenham?"
- On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence; and he
- told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property of his own in the
- country; that he resided there only while he was visiting the old lady
- at Allenham Court, to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
- to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth catching I can
- tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty little estate of his own in
- Somersetshire besides; and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
- younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills. Miss
- Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself. Brandon will
- be jealous, if she does not take care."
- "I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a good humoured smile,
- "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded by the attempts of either of MY
- daughters towards what you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment
- to which they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us, let
- them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however, from what you say,
- that he is a respectable young man, and one whose acquaintance will not
- be ineligible."
- "He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe, as ever lived," repeated
- Sir John. "I remember last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he
- danced from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
- "Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes, "and with
- elegance, with spirit?"
- "Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
- "That is what I like; that is what a young man ought to be. Whatever
- be his pursuits, his eagerness in them should know no moderation, and
- leave him no sense of fatigue."
- "Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see how it will be.
- You will be setting your cap at him now, and never think of poor
- Brandon."
- "That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne, warmly, "which I
- particularly dislike. I abhor every common-place phrase by which wit
- is intended; and 'setting one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,'
- are the most odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal; and
- if their construction could ever be deemed clever, time has long ago
- destroyed all its ingenuity."
- Sir John did not much understand this reproof; but he laughed as
- heartily as if he did, and then replied,
- "Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say, one way or other.
- Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already, and he is very well worth
- setting your cap at, I can tell you, in spite of all this tumbling
- about and spraining of ankles."
- CHAPTER 10
- Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance than precision,
- styled Willoughby, called at the cottage early the next morning to make
- his personal enquiries. He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more
- than politeness; with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and
- her own gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during the
- visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance, mutual affection,
- and domestic comfort of the family to whom accident had now introduced
- him. Of their personal charms he had not required a second interview
- to be convinced.
- Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion, regular features, and a
- remarkably pretty figure. Marianne was still handsomer. Her form,
- though not so correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of
- height, was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when in the
- common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl, truth was less
- violently outraged than usually happens. Her skin was very brown, but,
- from its transparency, her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her
- features were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive; and in her
- eyes, which were very dark, there was a life, a spirit, an eagerness,
- which could hardily be seen without delight. From Willoughby their
- expression was at first held back, by the embarrassment which the
- remembrance of his assistance created. But when this passed away, when
- her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the perfect
- good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness and vivacity, and
- above all, when she heard him declare, that of music and dancing he was
- passionately fond, she gave him such a look of approbation as secured
- the largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest of his stay.
- It was only necessary to mention any favourite amusement to engage her
- to talk. She could not be silent when such points were introduced, and
- she had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion. They speedily
- discovered that their enjoyment of dancing and music was mutual, and
- that it arose from a general conformity of judgment in all that related
- to either. Encouraged by this to a further examination of his
- opinions, she proceeded to question him on the subject of books; her
- favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt upon with so rapturous
- a delight, that any young man of five and twenty must have been
- insensible indeed, not to become an immediate convert to the excellence
- of such works, however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly
- alike. The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--or if
- any difference appeared, any objection arose, it lasted no longer than
- till the force of her arguments and the brightness of her eyes could be
- displayed. He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her
- enthusiasm; and long before his visit concluded, they conversed with
- the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
- "Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them, "for ONE
- morning I think you have done pretty well. You have already
- ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in almost every matter of
- importance. You know what he thinks of Cowper and Scott; you are
- certain of his estimating their beauties as he ought, and you have
- received every assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
- But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
- extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse? You will soon
- have exhausted each favourite topic. Another meeting will suffice to
- explain his sentiments on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and
- then you can have nothing farther to ask."--
- "Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this just? are my ideas so
- scanty? But I see what you mean. I have been too much at my ease, too
- happy, too frank. I have erred against every common-place notion of
- decorum; I have been open and sincere where I ought to have been
- reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had I talked only of the
- weather and the roads, and had I spoken only once in ten minutes, this
- reproach would have been spared."
- "My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended with Elinor--she
- was only in jest. I should scold her myself, if she were capable of
- wishing to check the delight of your conversation with our new
- friend."-- Marianne was softened in a moment.
- Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his pleasure in their
- acquaintance, which an evident wish of improving it could offer. He
- came to them every day. To enquire after Marianne was at first his
- excuse; but the encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
- greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it had ceased
- to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery. She was confined for
- some days to the house; but never had any confinement been less
- irksome. Willoughby was a young man of good abilities, quick
- imagination, lively spirits, and open, affectionate manners. He was
- exactly formed to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
- not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour of mind which was
- now roused and increased by the example of her own, and which
- recommended him to her affection beyond every thing else.
- His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment. They read,
- they talked, they sang together; his musical talents were considerable;
- and he read with all the sensibility and spirit which Edward had
- unfortunately wanted.
- In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless as in Marianne's; and
- Elinor saw nothing to censure in him but a propensity, in which he
- strongly resembled and peculiarly delighted her sister, of saying too
- much what he thought on every occasion, without attention to persons or
- circumstances. In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other
- people, in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment of undivided
- attention where his heart was engaged, and in slighting too easily the
- forms of worldly propriety, he displayed a want of caution which Elinor
- could not approve, in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in
- its support.
- Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation which had seized
- her at sixteen and a half, of ever seeing a man who could satisfy her
- ideas of perfection, had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was
- all that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour and in every
- brighter period, as capable of attaching her; and his behaviour
- declared his wishes to be in that respect as earnest, as his abilities
- were strong.
- Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative thought of their
- marriage had been raised, by his prospect of riches, was led before the
- end of a week to hope and expect it; and secretly to congratulate
- herself on having gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
- Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had so early been
- discovered by his friends, now first became perceptible to Elinor, when
- it ceased to be noticed by them. Their attention and wit were drawn
- off to his more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other had
- incurred before any partiality arose, was removed when his feelings
- began really to call for the ridicule so justly annexed to sensibility.
- Elinor was obliged, though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments
- which Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction, were now
- actually excited by her sister; and that however a general resemblance
- of disposition between the parties might forward the affection of Mr.
- Willoughby, an equally striking opposition of character was no
- hindrance to the regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
- for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope, when opposed to a
- very lively one of five and twenty? and as she could not even wish him
- successful, she heartily wished him indifferent. She liked him--in
- spite of his gravity and reserve, she beheld in him an object of
- interest. His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
- appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits than of any
- natural gloominess of temper. Sir John had dropped hints of past
- injuries and disappointments, which justified her belief of his being
- an unfortunate man, and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
- Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more because he was slighted by
- Willoughby and Marianne, who, prejudiced against him for being neither
- lively nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
- "Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby one day, when they
- were talking of him together, "whom every body speaks well of, and
- nobody cares about; whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
- to talk to."
- "That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
- "Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it is injustice in
- both of you. He is highly esteemed by all the family at the park, and
- I never see him myself without taking pains to converse with him."
- "That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby, "is certainly in
- his favour; but as for the esteem of the others, it is a reproach in
- itself. Who would submit to the indignity of being approved by such a
- woman as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command the
- indifference of any body else?"
- "But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself and Marianne will
- make amends for the regard of Lady Middleton and her mother. If their
- praise is censure, your censure may be praise, for they are not more
- undiscerning, than you are prejudiced and unjust."
- "In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
- "My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man; and sense will always
- have attractions for me. Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty
- and forty. He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad, has
- read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him capable of giving me
- much information on various subjects; and he has always answered my
- inquiries with readiness of good-breeding and good nature."
- "That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously, "he has told you, that
- in the East Indies the climate is hot, and the mosquitoes are
- troublesome."
- "He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made any such inquiries,
- but they happened to be points on which I had been previously informed."
- "Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may have extended to the
- existence of nabobs, gold mohrs, and palanquins."
- "I may venture to say that HIS observations have stretched much further
- than your candour. But why should you dislike him?"
- "I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary, as a very
- respectable man, who has every body's good word, and nobody's notice;
- who, has more money than he can spend, more time than he knows how to
- employ, and two new coats every year."
- "Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has neither genius, taste, nor
- spirit. That his understanding has no brilliancy, his feelings no
- ardour, and his voice no expression."
- "You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass," replied Elinor,
- "and so much on the strength of your own imagination, that the
- commendation I am able to give of him is comparatively cold and
- insipid. I can only pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred,
- well-informed, of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable
- heart."
- "Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using me unkindly. You
- are endeavouring to disarm me by reason, and to convince me against my
- will. But it will not do. You shall find me as stubborn as you can be
- artful. I have three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel
- Brandon; he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine; he has
- found fault with the hanging of my curricle, and I cannot persuade him
- to buy my brown mare. If it will be any satisfaction to you, however,
- to be told, that I believe his character to be in other respects
- irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return for an
- acknowledgment, which must give me some pain, you cannot deny me the
- privilege of disliking him as much as ever."
- CHAPTER 11
- Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined when they first came
- into Devonshire, that so many engagements would arise to occupy their
- time as shortly presented themselves, or that they should have such
- frequent invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
- leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case. When Marianne
- was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home and abroad, which Sir
- John had been previously forming, were put into execution. The private
- balls at the park then began; and parties on the water were made and
- accomplished as often as a showery October would allow. In every
- meeting of the kind Willoughby was included; and the ease and
- familiarity which naturally attended these parties were exactly
- calculated to give increasing intimacy to his acquaintance with the
- Dashwoods, to afford him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of
- Marianne, of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
- in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance of her
- affection.
- Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment. She only wished
- that it were less openly shewn; and once or twice did venture to
- suggest the propriety of some self-command to Marianne. But Marianne
- abhorred all concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
- and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not in themselves
- illaudable, appeared to her not merely an unnecessary effort, but a
- disgraceful subjection of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
- Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at all times, was an
- illustration of their opinions.
- When he was present she had no eyes for any one else. Every thing he
- did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever. If their evenings at
- the park were concluded with cards, he cheated himself and all the rest
- of the party to get her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
- of the night, they were partners for half the time; and when obliged to
- separate for a couple of dances, were careful to stand together and
- scarcely spoke a word to any body else. Such conduct made them of
- course most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame, and
- seemed hardly to provoke them.
- Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with a warmth which left
- her no inclination for checking this excessive display of them. To her
- it was but the natural consequence of a strong affection in a young and
- ardent mind.
- This was the season of happiness to Marianne. Her heart was devoted to
- Willoughby, and the fond attachment to Norland, which she brought with
- her from Sussex, was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
- possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed on her
- present home.
- Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not so much at
- ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements so pure. They afforded
- her no companion that could make amends for what she had left behind,
- nor that could teach her to think of Norland with less regret than
- ever. Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply to her the
- conversation she missed; although the latter was an everlasting talker,
- and from the first had regarded her with a kindness which ensured her a
- large share of her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
- to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been equal to
- her means of improvement, she might have known very early in their
- acquaintance all the particulars of Mr. Jennings's last illness, and
- what he said to his wife a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton
- was more agreeable than her mother only in being more silent. Elinor
- needed little observation to perceive that her reserve was a mere
- calmness of manner with which sense had nothing to do. Towards her
- husband and mother she was the same as to them; and intimacy was
- therefore neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing to say
- one day that she had not said the day before. Her insipidity was
- invariable, for even her spirits were always the same; and though she
- did not oppose the parties arranged by her husband, provided every
- thing were conducted in style and her two eldest children attended her,
- she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them than she might
- have experienced in sitting at home;--and so little did her presence
- add to the pleasure of the others, by any share in their conversation,
- that they were sometimes only reminded of her being amongst them by her
- solicitude about her troublesome boys.
- In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance, did Elinor find
- a person who could in any degree claim the respect of abilities, excite
- the interest of friendship, or give pleasure as a companion.
- Willoughby was out of the question. Her admiration and regard, even
- her sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover; his
- attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less agreeable man might
- have been more generally pleasing. Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for
- himself, had no such encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in
- conversing with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
- indifference of her sister.
- Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason to suspect
- that the misery of disappointed love had already been known to him.
- This suspicion was given by some words which accidentally dropped from
- him one evening at the park, when they were sitting down together by
- mutual consent, while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed on
- Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes, he said, with a faint
- smile, "Your sister, I understand, does not approve of second
- attachments."
- "No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
- "Or rather, as I believe, she considers them impossible to exist."
- "I believe she does. But how she contrives it without reflecting on
- the character of her own father, who had himself two wives, I know not.
- A few years however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis of
- common sense and observation; and then they may be more easy to define
- and to justify than they now are, by any body but herself."
- "This will probably be the case," he replied; "and yet there is
- something so amiable in the prejudices of a young mind, that one is
- sorry to see them give way to the reception of more general opinions."
- "I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor. "There are
- inconveniences attending such feelings as Marianne's, which all the
- charms of enthusiasm and ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her
- systems have all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at
- nought; and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look forward
- to as her greatest possible advantage."
- After a short pause he resumed the conversation by saying,--
- "Does your sister make no distinction in her objections against a
- second attachment? or is it equally criminal in every body? Are those
- who have been disappointed in their first choice, whether from the
- inconstancy of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances, to be
- equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
- "Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae of her principles.
- I only know that I never yet heard her admit any instance of a second
- attachment's being pardonable."
- "This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change, a total change of
- sentiments--No, no, do not desire it; for when the romantic refinements
- of a young mind are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
- succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too dangerous! I
- speak from experience. I once knew a lady who in temper and mind
- greatly resembled your sister, who thought and judged like her, but who
- from an inforced change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
- Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said too much,
- and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures, which might not
- otherwise have entered Elinor's head. The lady would probably have
- passed without suspicion, had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what
- concerned her ought not to escape his lips. As it was, it required but
- a slight effort of fancy to connect his emotion with the tender
- recollection of past regard. Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne,
- in her place, would not have done so little. The whole story would
- have been speedily formed under her active imagination; and every thing
- established in the most melancholy order of disastrous love.
- CHAPTER 12
- As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the next morning the
- latter communicated a piece of news to her sister, which in spite of
- all that she knew before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
- surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both. Marianne told her,
- with the greatest delight, that Willoughby had given her a horse, one
- that he had bred himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
- exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering that it was
- not in her mother's plan to keep any horse, that if she were to alter
- her resolution in favour of this gift, she must buy another for the
- servant, and keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
- to receive them, she had accepted the present without hesitation, and
- told her sister of it in raptures.
- "He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire immediately for it,"
- she added, "and when it arrives we will ride every day. You shall
- share its use with me. Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the
- delight of a gallop on some of these downs."
- Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of felicity to
- comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended the affair; and for
- some time she refused to submit to them. As to an additional servant,
- the expense would be a trifle; Mama she was sure would never object to
- it; and any horse would do for HIM; he might always get one at the
- park; as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient. Elinor then
- ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving such a present from a
- man so little, or at least so lately known to her. This was too much.
- "You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly, "in supposing I know very
- little of Willoughby. I have not known him long indeed, but I am much
- better acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature in the
- world, except yourself and mama. It is not time or opportunity that is
- to determine intimacy;--it is disposition alone. Seven years would be
- insufficient to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
- days are more than enough for others. I should hold myself guilty of
- greater impropriety in accepting a horse from my brother, than from
- Willoughby. Of John I know very little, though we have lived together
- for years; but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
- Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more. She knew her
- sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a subject would only attach
- her the more to her own opinion. But by an appeal to her affection for
- her mother, by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
- mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be the case) she
- consented to this increase of establishment, Marianne was shortly
- subdued; and she promised not to tempt her mother to such imprudent
- kindness by mentioning the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw
- him next, that it must be declined.
- She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby called at the
- cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her express her disappointment to
- him in a low voice, on being obliged to forego the acceptance of his
- present. The reasons for this alteration were at the same time
- related, and they were such as to make further entreaty on his side
- impossible. His concern however was very apparent; and after
- expressing it with earnestness, he added, in the same low voice,--"But,
- Marianne, the horse is still yours, though you cannot use it now. I
- shall keep it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton to
- form your own establishment in a more lasting home, Queen Mab shall
- receive you."
- This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the whole of the
- sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it, and in his addressing her
- sister by her Christian name alone, she instantly saw an intimacy so
- decided, a meaning so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between
- them. From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged to each
- other; and the belief of it created no other surprise than that she, or
- any of their friends, should be left by tempers so frank, to discover
- it by accident.
- Margaret related something to her the next day, which placed this
- matter in a still clearer light. Willoughby had spent the preceding
- evening with them, and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
- with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity for observations,
- which, with a most important face, she communicated to her eldest
- sister, when they were next by themselves.
- "Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to tell you about
- Marianne. I am sure she will be married to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
- "You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every day since they first
- met on High-church Down; and they had not known each other a week, I
- believe, before you were certain that Marianne wore his picture round
- her neck; but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great
- uncle."
- "But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure they will be
- married very soon, for he has got a lock of her hair."
- "Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair of some great uncle of
- HIS."
- "But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost sure it is, for I
- saw him cut it off. Last night after tea, when you and mama went out
- of the room, they were whispering and talking together as fast as could
- be, and he seemed to be begging something of her, and presently he took
- up her scissors and cut off a long lock of her hair, for it was all
- tumbled down her back; and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of
- white paper; and put it into his pocket-book."
- For such particulars, stated on such authority, Elinor could not
- withhold her credit; nor was she disposed to it, for the circumstance
- was in perfect unison with what she had heard and seen herself.
- Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a way so satisfactory
- to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings attacked her one evening at the
- park, to give the name of the young man who was Elinor's particular
- favourite, which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
- Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying, "I must not
- tell, may I, Elinor?"
- This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor tried to laugh too.
- But the effort was painful. She was convinced that Margaret had fixed
- on a person whose name she could not bear with composure to become a
- standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
- Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did more harm than good
- to the cause, by turning very red and saying in an angry manner to
- Margaret,
- "Remember that whatever your conjectures may be, you have no right to
- repeat them."
- "I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret; "it was you
- who told me of it yourself."
- This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret was eagerly
- pressed to say something more.
- "Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it," said Mrs.
- Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
- "I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is; and I know
- where he is too."
- "Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house at Norland to be
- sure. He is the curate of the parish I dare say."
- "No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
- "Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth, "you know that all this is
- an invention of your own, and that there is no such person in
- existence."
- "Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I am sure there was such
- a man once, and his name begins with an F."
- Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton for observing, at this
- moment, "that it rained very hard," though she believed the
- interruption to proceed less from any attention to her, than from her
- ladyship's great dislike of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as
- delighted her husband and mother. The idea however started by her, was
- immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was on every occasion
- mindful of the feelings of others; and much was said on the subject of
- rain by both of them. Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked
- Marianne to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours of
- different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground. But not so
- easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into which it had thrown her.
- A party was formed this evening for going on the following day to see a
- very fine place about twelve miles from Barton, belonging to a
- brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon, without whose interest it could not
- be seen, as the proprietor, who was then abroad, had left strict orders
- on that head. The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful, and
- Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise, might be allowed
- to be a tolerable judge, for he had formed parties to visit them, at
- least, twice every summer for the last ten years. They contained a
- noble piece of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of the
- morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken, open carriages
- only to be employed, and every thing conducted in the usual style of a
- complete party of pleasure.
- To some few of the company it appeared rather a bold undertaking,
- considering the time of year, and that it had rained every day for the
- last fortnight;--and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was
- persuaded by Elinor to stay at home.
- CHAPTER 13
- Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out very different from
- what Elinor had expected. She was prepared to be wet through,
- fatigued, and frightened; but the event was still more unfortunate, for
- they did not go at all.
- By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at the park, where they
- were to breakfast. The morning was rather favourable, though it had
- rained all night, as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
- and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high spirits and
- good humour, eager to be happy, and determined to submit to the
- greatest inconveniences and hardships rather than be otherwise.
- While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in. Among the
- rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he took it, looked at the
- direction, changed colour, and immediately left the room.
- "What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
- Nobody could tell.
- "I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton. "It must be
- something extraordinary that could make Colonel Brandon leave my
- breakfast table so suddenly."
- In about five minutes he returned.
- "No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings, as soon as he
- entered the room.
- "None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
- "Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say that your sister is
- worse."
- "No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely a letter of business."
- "But how came the hand to discompose you so much, if it was only a
- letter of business? Come, come, this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear
- the truth of it."
- "My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what you are saying."
- "Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny is married?" said
- Mrs. Jennings, without attending to her daughter's reproof.
- "No, indeed, it is not."
- "Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I hope she is well."
- "Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
- "Oh! you know who I mean."
- "I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he, addressing Lady Middleton,
- "that I should receive this letter today, for it is on business which
- requires my immediate attendance in town."
- "In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you have to do in town at
- this time of year?"
- "My own loss is great," he continued, "in being obliged to leave so
- agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned, as I fear my presence
- is necessary to gain your admittance at Whitwell."
- What a blow upon them all was this!
- "But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon," said
- Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
- He shook his head.
- "We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put off when we are so
- near it. You cannot go to town till tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
- "I wish it could be so easily settled. But it is not in my power to
- delay my journey for one day!"
- "If you would but let us know what your business is," said Mrs.
- Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put off or not."
- "You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby, "if you were to
- defer your journey till our return."
- "I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
- Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne, "There
- are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure. Brandon is one of
- them. He was afraid of catching cold I dare say, and invented this
- trick for getting out of it. I would lay fifty guineas the letter was
- of his own writing."
- "I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
- "There is no persuading you to change your mind, Brandon, I know of
- old," said Sir John, "when once you are determined on anything. But,
- however, I hope you will think better of it. Consider, here are the
- two Miss Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods walked
- up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up two hours before his
- usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
- Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being the cause of
- disappointing the party; but at the same time declared it to be
- unavoidable.
- "Well, then, when will you come back again?"
- "I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship, "as soon as
- you can conveniently leave town; and we must put off the party to
- Whitwell till you return."
- "You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain, when I may have it in
- my power to return, that I dare not engage for it at all."
- "Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John. "If he is not here
- by the end of the week, I shall go after him."
- "Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then perhaps you may
- find out what his business is."
- "I do not want to pry into other men's concerns. I suppose it is
- something he is ashamed of."
- Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
- "You do not go to town on horseback, do you?" added Sir John.
- "No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
- "Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you a good journey. But you
- had better change your mind."
- "I assure you it is not in my power."
- He then took leave of the whole party.
- "Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters in town this
- winter, Miss Dashwood?"
- "I am afraid, none at all."
- "Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time than I should wish to
- do."
- To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
- "Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go, do let us know what
- you are going about."
- He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John, left the room.
- The complaints and lamentations which politeness had hitherto
- restrained, now burst forth universally; and they all agreed again and
- again how provoking it was to be so disappointed.
- "I can guess what his business is, however," said Mrs. Jennings
- exultingly.
- "Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
- "Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
- "And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
- "What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am sure you must have
- heard of her before. She is a relation of the Colonel's, my dear; a
- very near relation. We will not say how near, for fear of shocking the
- young ladies." Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
- "She is his natural daughter."
- "Indeed!"
- "Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare. I dare say the Colonel
- will leave her all his fortune."
- When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily in the general regret
- on so unfortunate an event; concluding however by observing, that as
- they were all got together, they must do something by way of being
- happy; and after some consultation it was agreed, that although
- happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell, they might procure a
- tolerable composure of mind by driving about the country. The
- carriages were then ordered; Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never
- looked happier than when she got into it. He drove through the park
- very fast, and they were soon out of sight; and nothing more of them
- was seen till their return, which did not happen till after the return
- of all the rest. They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
- only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes, while the others
- went on the downs.
- It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening, and that
- every body should be extremely merry all day long. Some more of the
- Careys came to dinner, and they had the pleasure of sitting down nearly
- twenty to table, which Sir John observed with great contentment.
- Willoughby took his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
- Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not been long
- seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby, and said to
- Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear, "I have found you out in
- spite of all your tricks. I know where you spent the morning."
- Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily, "Where, pray?"--
- "Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had been out in my
- curricle?"
- "Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well, and I was determined
- to find out WHERE you had been to.-- I hope you like your house, Miss
- Marianne. It is a very large one, I know; and when I come to see you,
- I hope you will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much when
- I was there six years ago."
- Marianne turned away in great confusion. Mrs. Jennings laughed
- heartily; and Elinor found that in her resolution to know where they
- had been, she had actually made her own woman enquire of Mr.
- Willoughby's groom; and that she had by that method been informed that
- they had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there in
- walking about the garden and going all over the house.
- Elinor could hardly believe this to be true, as it seemed very unlikely
- that Willoughby should propose, or Marianne consent, to enter the house
- while Mrs. Smith was in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest
- acquaintance.
- As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired of her about it;
- and great was her surprise when she found that every circumstance
- related by Mrs. Jennings was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry
- with her for doubting it.
- "Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not go there, or that we
- did not see the house? Is not it what you have often wished to do
- yourself?"
- "Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith was there, and with
- no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
- "Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can have a right to shew
- that house; and as he went in an open carriage, it was impossible to
- have any other companion. I never spent a pleasanter morning in my
- life."
- "I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness of an employment
- does not always evince its propriety."
- "On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof of it, Elinor; for if
- there had been any real impropriety in what I did, I should have been
- sensible of it at the time, for we always know when we are acting
- wrong, and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
- "But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you to some very
- impertinent remarks, do you not now begin to doubt the discretion of
- your own conduct?"
- "If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are to be the proof of
- impropriety in conduct, we are all offending every moment of our lives.
- I value not her censure any more than I should do her commendation. I
- am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking over Mrs.
- Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house. They will one day be Mr.
- Willoughby's, and--"
- "If they were one day to be your own, Marianne, you would not be
- justified in what you have done."
- She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly gratifying to her;
- and after a ten minutes' interval of earnest thought, she came to her
- sister again, and said with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS
- rather ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
- particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house, I assure
- you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room up stairs; of a nice
- comfortable size for constant use, and with modern furniture it would
- be delightful. It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides. On
- one side you look across the bowling-green, behind the house, to a
- beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you have a view of the church
- and village, and, beyond them, of those fine bold hills that we have so
- often admired. I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
- more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly fitted up--a
- couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says, would make it one of the
- pleasantest summer-rooms in England."
- Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption from the others,
- she would have described every room in the house with equal delight.
- CHAPTER 14
- The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit at the park, with his
- steadiness in concealing its cause, filled the mind, and raised the
- wonder of Mrs. Jennings for two or three days; she was a great
- wonderer, as every one must be who takes a very lively interest in all
- the comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered, with
- little intermission what could be the reason of it; was sure there must
- be some bad news, and thought over every kind of distress that could
- have befallen him, with a fixed determination that he should not escape
- them all.
- "Something very melancholy must be the matter, I am sure," said she.
- "I could see it in his face. Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances
- may be bad. The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two
- thousand a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved. I do
- think he must have been sent for about money matters, for what else can
- it be? I wonder whether it is so. I would give anything to know the
- truth of it. Perhaps it is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare
- say it is, because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her. May be
- she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely, for I have a
- notion she is always rather sickly. I would lay any wager it is about
- Miss Williams. It is not so very likely he should be distressed in his
- circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man, and to be sure must
- have cleared the estate by this time. I wonder what it can be! May be
- his sister is worse at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting
- off in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out of all
- his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into the bargain."
- So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion varying with every
- fresh conjecture, and all seeming equally probable as they arose.
- Elinor, though she felt really interested in the welfare of Colonel
- Brandon, could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly away,
- which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling; for besides that the
- circumstance did not in her opinion justify such lasting amazement or
- variety of speculation, her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was
- engrossed by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby on
- the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly interesting to them
- all. As this silence continued, every day made it appear more strange
- and more incompatible with the disposition of both. Why they should
- not openly acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
- behaviour to each other declared to have taken place, Elinor could not
- imagine.
- She could easily conceive that marriage might not be immediately in
- their power; for though Willoughby was independent, there was no reason
- to believe him rich. His estate had been rated by Sir John at about
- six or seven hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that
- income could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained of
- his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy maintained by them
- relative to their engagement, which in fact concealed nothing at all,
- she could not account; and it was so wholly contradictory to their
- general opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered her mind
- of their being really engaged, and this doubt was enough to prevent her
- making any inquiry of Marianne.
- Nothing could be more expressive of attachment to them all, than
- Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne it had all the distinguishing
- tenderness which a lover's heart could give, and to the rest of the
- family it was the affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The
- cottage seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home; many more
- of his hours were spent there than at Allenham; and if no general
- engagement collected them at the park, the exercise which called him
- out in the morning was almost certain of ending there, where the rest
- of the day was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
- favourite pointer at her feet.
- One evening in particular, about a week after Colonel Brandon left the
- country, his heart seemed more than usually open to every feeling of
- attachment to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's happening
- to mention her design of improving the cottage in the spring, he warmly
- opposed every alteration of a place which affection had established as
- perfect with him.
- "What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage! No. THAT I will
- never consent to. Not a stone must be added to its walls, not an inch
- to its size, if my feelings are regarded."
- "Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood, "nothing of the kind will be
- done; for my mother will never have money enough to attempt it."
- "I am heartily glad of it," he cried. "May she always be poor, if she
- can employ her riches no better."
- "Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I would not
- sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment of yours, or of any one
- whom I loved, for all the improvements in the world. Depend upon it
- that whatever unemployed sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in
- the spring, I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose of it
- in a manner so painful to you. But are you really so attached to this
- place as to see no defect in it?"
- "I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more, I consider it as
- the only form of building in which happiness is attainable, and were I
- rich enough I would instantly pull Combe down, and build it up again in
- the exact plan of this cottage."
- "With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes, I suppose," said
- Elinor.
- "Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all and every thing
- belonging to it;--in no one convenience or INconvenience about it,
- should the least variation be perceptible. Then, and then only, under
- such a roof, I might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at
- Barton."
- "I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under the disadvantage
- of better rooms and a broader staircase, you will hereafter find your
- own house as faultless as you now do this."
- "There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby, "which might
- greatly endear it to me; but this place will always have one claim of
- my affection, which no other can possibly share."
- Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne, whose fine eyes were
- fixed so expressively on Willoughby, as plainly denoted how well she
- understood him.
- "How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at Allenham this time
- twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were inhabited! I never passed within
- view of it without admiring its situation, and grieving that no one
- should live in it. How little did I then think that the very first
- news I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into the country,
- would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I felt an immediate
- satisfaction and interest in the event, which nothing but a kind of
- prescience of what happiness I should experience from it, can account
- for. Must it not have been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered
- voice. Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this house
- you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it of its simplicity by
- imaginary improvement! and this dear parlour in which our acquaintance
- first began, and in which so many happy hours have been since spent by
- us together, you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
- and every body would be eager to pass through the room which has
- hitherto contained within itself more real accommodation and comfort
- than any other apartment of the handsomest dimensions in the world
- could possibly afford."
- Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration of the kind should
- be attempted.
- "You are a good woman," he warmly replied. "Your promise makes me
- easy. Extend it a little farther, and it will make me happy. Tell me
- that not only your house will remain the same, but that I shall ever
- find you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you will
- always consider me with the kindness which has made everything
- belonging to you so dear to me."
- The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's behaviour during the
- whole of the evening declared at once his affection and happiness.
- "Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood, when he was
- leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in the morning, for we must
- walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
- He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
- CHAPTER 15
- Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place the next day, and
- two of her daughters went with her; but Marianne excused herself from
- being of the party, under some trifling pretext of employment; and her
- mother, who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby the
- night before of calling on her while they were absent, was perfectly
- satisfied with her remaining at home.
- On their return from the park they found Willoughby's curricle and
- servant in waiting at the cottage, and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that
- her conjecture had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
- but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight had taught her
- to expect. They were no sooner in the passage than Marianne came
- hastily out of the parlour apparently in violent affliction, with her
- handkerchief at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
- Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room she had
- just quitted, where they found only Willoughby, who was leaning against
- the mantel-piece with his back towards them. He turned round on their
- coming in, and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook of the
- emotion which over-powered Marianne.
- "Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood as she
- entered--"is she ill?"
- "I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful; and with a forced
- smile presently added, "It is I who may rather expect to be ill--for I
- am now suffering under a very heavy disappointment!"
- "Disappointment?"
- "Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you. Mrs. Smith has
- this morning exercised the privilege of riches upon a poor dependent
- cousin, by sending me on business to London. I have just received my
- dispatches, and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of
- exhilaration I am now come to take my farewell of you."
- "To London!--and are you going this morning?"
- "Almost this moment."
- "This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must be obliged;--and her
- business will not detain you from us long I hope."
- He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I have no idea of
- returning into Devonshire immediately. My visits to Mrs. Smith are
- never repeated within the twelvemonth."
- "And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only house in the
- neighbourhood to which you will be welcome? For shame, Willoughby, can
- you wait for an invitation here?"
- His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed on the ground he only
- replied, "You are too good."
- Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise. Elinor felt equal
- amazement. For a few moments every one was silent. Mrs. Dashwood
- first spoke.
- "I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at Barton cottage you
- will always be welcome; for I will not press you to return here
- immediately, because you only can judge how far THAT might be pleasing
- to Mrs. Smith; and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
- your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
- "My engagements at present," replied Willoughby, confusedly, "are of
- such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
- He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished to speak, and another
- pause succeeded. This was broken by Willoughby, who said with a faint
- smile, "It is folly to linger in this manner. I will not torment
- myself any longer by remaining among friends whose society it is
- impossible for me now to enjoy."
- He then hastily took leave of them all and left the room. They saw him
- step into his carriage, and in a minute it was out of sight.
- Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly quitted the
- parlour to give way in solitude to the concern and alarm which this
- sudden departure occasioned.
- Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's. She thought of
- what had just passed with anxiety and distrust. Willoughby's behaviour
- in taking leave of them, his embarrassment, and affectation of
- cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness to accept her mother's
- invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover, so unlike himself,
- greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared that no serious design
- had ever been formed on his side; and the next that some unfortunate
- quarrel had taken place between him and her sister;--the distress in
- which Marianne had quitted the room was such as a serious quarrel could
- most reasonably account for, though when she considered what Marianne's
- love for him was, a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
- But whatever might be the particulars of their separation, her sister's
- affliction was indubitable; and she thought with the tenderest
- compassion of that violent sorrow which Marianne was in all probability
- not merely giving way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a
- duty.
- In about half an hour her mother returned, and though her eyes were
- red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
- "Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor," said she,
- as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart does he travel?"
- "It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It seems but the work
- of a moment. And last night he was with us so happy, so cheerful, so
- affectionate? And now, after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without
- intending to return!--Something more than what he owned to us must have
- happened. He did not speak, he did not behave like himself. YOU must
- have seen the difference as well as I. What can it be? Can they have
- quarrelled? Why else should he have shewn such unwillingness to accept
- your invitation here?"--
- "It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could plainly see
- THAT. He had not the power of accepting it. I have thought it all
- over I assure you, and I can perfectly account for every thing that at
- first seemed strange to me as well as to you."
- "Can you, indeed!"
- "Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most satisfactory way;--but
- you, Elinor, who love to doubt where you can--it will not satisfy YOU,
- I know; but you shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am
- persuaded that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne, disapproves
- of it, (perhaps because she has other views for him,) and on that
- account is eager to get him away;--and that the business which she
- sends him off to transact is invented as an excuse to dismiss him.
- This is what I believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that
- she DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore at present
- confess to her his engagement with Marianne, and he feels himself
- obliged, from his dependent situation, to give into her schemes, and
- absent himself from Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
- that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen to no cavil,
- unless you can point out any other method of understanding the affair
- as satisfactory at this. And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
- "Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
- "Then you would have told me, that it might or might not have happened.
- Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your feelings! You had rather
- take evil upon credit than good. You had rather look out for misery
- for Marianne, and guilt for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the
- latter. You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took leave
- of us with less affection than his usual behaviour has shewn. And is
- no allowance to be made for inadvertence, or for spirits depressed by
- recent disappointment? Are no probabilities to be accepted, merely
- because they are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
- have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world to think ill
- of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable in themselves, though
- unavoidably secret for a while? And, after all, what is it you suspect
- him of?"
- "I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of something unpleasant is
- the inevitable consequence of such an alteration as we just witnessed
- in him. There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged of
- the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it is my wish to be
- candid in my judgment of every body. Willoughby may undoubtedly have
- very sufficient reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
- But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge them at
- once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I cannot help wondering at
- its being practiced by him."
- "Do not blame him, however, for departing from his character, where the
- deviation is necessary. But you really do admit the justice of what I
- have said in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
- "Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their engagement (if they
- ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--and if that is the case, it must be
- highly expedient for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at
- present. But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
- "Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse Willoughby and
- Marianne of concealment? This is strange indeed, when your eyes have
- been reproaching them every day for incautiousness."
- "I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor; "but of their
- engagement I do."
- "I am perfectly satisfied of both."
- "Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the subject, by either of
- them."
- "I have not wanted syllables where actions have spoken so plainly. Has
- not his behaviour to Marianne and to all of us, for at least the last
- fortnight, declared that he loved and considered her as his future
- wife, and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest relation?
- Have we not perfectly understood each other? Has not my consent been
- daily asked by his looks, his manner, his attentive and affectionate
- respect? My Elinor, is it possible to doubt their engagement? How
- could such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed that
- Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your sister's love, should leave
- her, and leave her perhaps for months, without telling her of his
- affection;--that they should part without a mutual exchange of
- confidence?"
- "I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance except ONE is in
- favour of their engagement; but that ONE is the total silence of both
- on the subject, and with me it almost outweighs every other."
- "How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed of Willoughby,
- if, after all that has openly passed between them, you can doubt the
- nature of the terms on which they are together. Has he been acting a
- part in his behaviour to your sister all this time? Do you suppose him
- really indifferent to her?"
- "No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her I am sure."
- "But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can leave her with such
- indifference, such carelessness of the future, as you attribute to him."
- "You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never considered this
- matter as certain. I have had my doubts, I confess; but they are
- fainter than they were, and they may soon be entirely done away. If we
- find they correspond, every fear of mine will be removed."
- "A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see them at the altar, you
- would suppose they were going to be married. Ungracious girl! But I
- require no such proof. Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to
- justify doubt; no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly
- open and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes. It must
- be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why? Is he not a man of
- honour and feeling? Has there been any inconsistency on his side to
- create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
- "I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor. "I love Willoughby,
- sincerely love him; and suspicion of his integrity cannot be more
- painful to yourself than to me. It has been involuntary, and I will
- not encourage it. I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
- manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself, and did not
- return your kindness with any cordiality. But all this may be
- explained by such a situation of his affairs as you have supposed. He
- had just parted from my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest
- affliction; and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs.
- Smith, to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet aware
- that by declining your invitation, by saying that he was going away for
- some time, he should seem to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by
- our family, he might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a
- case, a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been more
- to his honour I think, as well as more consistent with his general
- character;--but I will not raise objections against any one's conduct
- on so illiberal a foundation, as a difference in judgment from myself,
- or a deviation from what I may think right and consistent."
- "You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does not deserve to be
- suspected. Though WE have not known him long, he is no stranger in
- this part of the world; and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage?
- Had he been in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
- it might have been odd that he should leave us without acknowledging
- everything to me at once: but this is not the case. It is an
- engagement in some respects not prosperously begun, for their marriage
- must be at a very uncertain distance; and even secrecy, as far as it
- can be observed, may now be very advisable."
- They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret; and Elinor was then
- at liberty to think over the representations of her mother, to
- acknowledge the probability of many, and hope for the justice of all.
- They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time, when she entered the
- room and took her place at the table without saying a word. Her eyes
- were red and swollen; and it seemed as if her tears were even then
- restrained with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all, could
- neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her mother's silently
- pressing her hand with tender compassion, her small degree of fortitude
- was quite overcome, she burst into tears and left the room.
- This violent oppression of spirits continued the whole evening. She
- was without any power, because she was without any desire of command
- over herself. The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
- overpowered her in an instant; and though her family were most
- anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was impossible for them, if they
- spoke at all, to keep clear of every subject which her feelings
- connected with him.
- CHAPTER 16
- Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable had she been able
- to sleep at all the first night after parting from Willoughby. She
- would have been ashamed to look her family in the face the next
- morning, had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose than
- when she lay down in it. But the feelings which made such composure a
- disgrace, left her in no danger of incurring it. She was awake the
- whole night, and she wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a
- headache, was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
- giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters, and forbidding all
- attempt at consolation from either. Her sensibility was potent enough!
- When breakfast was over she walked out by herself, and wandered about
- the village of Allenham, indulging the recollection of past enjoyment
- and crying over the present reverse for the chief of the morning.
- The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling. She played
- over every favourite song that she had been used to play to Willoughby,
- every air in which their voices had been oftenest joined, and sat at
- the instrument gazing on every line of music that he had written out
- for her, till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness could be
- gained; and this nourishment of grief was every day applied. She spent
- whole hours at the pianoforte alternately singing and crying; her voice
- often totally suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in
- music, she courted the misery which a contrast between the past and
- present was certain of giving. She read nothing but what they had been
- used to read together.
- Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported for ever; it
- sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy; but these employments,
- to which she daily recurred, her solitary walks and silent meditations,
- still produced occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
- No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected by Marianne.
- Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again became uneasy. But Mrs.
- Dashwood could find explanations whenever she wanted them, which at
- least satisfied herself.
- "Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John fetches our
- letters himself from the post, and carries them to it. We have already
- agreed that secrecy may be necessary, and we must acknowledge that it
- could not be maintained if their correspondence were to pass through
- Sir John's hands."
- Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried to find in it a
- motive sufficient for their silence. But there was one method so
- direct, so simple, and in her opinion so eligible of knowing the real
- state of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery, that she
- could not help suggesting it to her mother.
- "Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she, "whether she is or she
- is not engaged to Willoughby? From you, her mother, and so kind, so
- indulgent a mother, the question could not give offence. It would be
- the natural result of your affection for her. She used to be all
- unreserve, and to you more especially."
- "I would not ask such a question for the world. Supposing it possible
- that they are not engaged, what distress would not such an enquiry
- inflict! At any rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never
- deserve her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession of
- what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one. I know
- Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me, and that I shall not
- be the last to whom the affair is made known, when circumstances make
- the revealment of it eligible. I would not attempt to force the
- confidence of any one; of a child much less; because a sense of duty
- would prevent the denial which her wishes might direct."
- Elinor thought this generosity overstrained, considering her sister's
- youth, and urged the matter farther, but in vain; common sense, common
- care, common prudence, were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic
- delicacy.
- It was several days before Willoughby's name was mentioned before
- Marianne by any of her family; Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were
- not so nice; their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--but
- one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a volume of
- Shakespeare, exclaimed,
- "We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear Willoughby went away
- before we could get through it. We will put it by, that when he comes
- again...But it may be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
- "Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise. "No--nor many weeks."
- Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said; but it gave Elinor
- pleasure, as it produced a reply from Marianne so expressive of
- confidence in Willoughby and knowledge of his intentions.
- One morning, about a week after his leaving the country, Marianne was
- prevailed on to join her sisters in their usual walk, instead of
- wandering away by herself. Hitherto she had carefully avoided every
- companion in her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the
- downs, she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked of the
- valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills, and could never be
- found when the others set off. But at length she was secured by the
- exertions of Elinor, who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion.
- They walked along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
- for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor, satisfied with
- gaining one point, would not then attempt more. Beyond the entrance of
- the valley, where the country, though still rich, was less wild and
- more open, a long stretch of the road which they had travelled on first
- coming to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point, they
- stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect which formed the
- distance of their view from the cottage, from a spot which they had
- never happened to reach in any of their walks before.
- Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered an animated one;
- it was a man on horseback riding towards them. In a few minutes they
- could distinguish him to be a gentleman; and in a moment afterwards
- Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
- "It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was hastening to meet
- him, when Elinor cried out,
- "Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is not Willoughby.
- The person is not tall enough for him, and has not his air."
- "He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has. His air, his
- coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
- She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor, to screen Marianne from
- particularity, as she felt almost certain of its not being Willoughby,
- quickened her pace and kept up with her. They were soon within thirty
- yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again; her heart sunk within
- her; and abruptly turning round, she was hurrying back, when the voices
- of both her sisters were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well
- known as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop, and she
- turned round with surprise to see and welcome Edward Ferrars.
- He was the only person in the world who could at that moment be
- forgiven for not being Willoughby; the only one who could have gained a
- smile from her; but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
- sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
- He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant, walked back with
- them to Barton, whither he was purposely coming to visit them.
- He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality, but especially by
- Marianne, who showed more warmth of regard in her reception of him than
- even Elinor herself. To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward
- and her sister was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness
- which she had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour. On
- Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency of all that a
- lover ought to look and say on such an occasion. He was confused,
- seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure in seeing them, looked neither
- rapturous nor gay, said little but what was forced from him by
- questions, and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection. Marianne
- saw and listened with increasing surprise. She began almost to feel a
- dislike of Edward; and it ended, as every feeling must end with her, by
- carrying back her thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a
- contrast sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
- After a short silence which succeeded the first surprise and enquiries
- of meeting, Marianne asked Edward if he came directly from London. No,
- he had been in Devonshire a fortnight.
- "A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being so long in the same
- county with Elinor without seeing her before.
- He looked rather distressed as he added, that he had been staying with
- some friends near Plymouth.
- "Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
- "I was at Norland about a month ago."
- "And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
- "Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks much as it always
- does at this time of the year. The woods and walks thickly covered
- with dead leaves."
- "Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation have I formerly
- seen them fall! How have I delighted, as I walked, to see them driven
- in showers about me by the wind! What feelings have they, the season,
- the air altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them. They
- are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off, and driven as much as
- possible from the sight."
- "It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your passion for dead
- leaves."
- "No; my feelings are not often shared, not often understood. But
- SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this, she sunk into a reverie for a
- few moments;--but rousing herself again, "Now, Edward," said she,
- calling his attention to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up
- to it, and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills! Did you ever
- see their equals? To the left is Barton park, amongst those woods and
- plantations. You may see the end of the house. And there, beneath
- that farthest hill, which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
- "It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these bottoms must be
- dirty in winter."
- "How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
- "Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the objects before
- me, I see a very dirty lane."
- "How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
- "Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the Middletons pleasant
- people?"
- "No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not be more unfortunately
- situated."
- "Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can you be so
- unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars; and towards
- us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you forgot, Marianne,
- how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
- "No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many painful moments."
- Elinor took no notice of this; and directing her attention to their
- visitor, endeavoured to support something like discourse with him, by
- talking of their present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting
- from him occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
- mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry; but resolving to
- regulate her behaviour to him by the past rather than the present, she
- avoided every appearance of resentment or displeasure, and treated him
- as she thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
- CHAPTER 17
- Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at seeing him; for his
- coming to Barton was, in her opinion, of all things the most natural.
- Her joy and expression of regard long outlived her wonder. He received
- the kindest welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
- stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him before he
- entered the house, and they were quite overcome by the captivating
- manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man could not very well be in love
- with either of her daughters, without extending the passion to her; and
- Elinor had the satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like
- himself. His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all, and his
- interest in their welfare again became perceptible. He was not in
- spirits, however; he praised their house, admired its prospect, was
- attentive, and kind; but still he was not in spirits. The whole family
- perceived it, and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of
- liberality in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
- selfish parents.
- "What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?" said she,
- when dinner was over and they had drawn round the fire; "are you still
- to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
- "No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have no more talents than
- inclination for a public life!"
- "But how is your fame to be established? for famous you must be to
- satisfy all your family; and with no inclination for expense, no
- affection for strangers, no profession, and no assurance, you may find
- it a difficult matter."
- "I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be distinguished; and have
- every reason to hope I never shall. Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced
- into genius and eloquence."
- "You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes are all moderate."
- "As moderate as those of the rest of the world, I believe. I wish as
- well as every body else to be perfectly happy; but, like every body
- else it must be in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
- "Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have wealth or grandeur
- to do with happiness?"
- "Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth has much to do with
- it."
- "Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only give happiness
- where there is nothing else to give it. Beyond a competence, it can
- afford no real satisfaction, as far as mere self is concerned."
- "Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come to the same point. YOUR
- competence and MY wealth are very much alike, I dare say; and without
- them, as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every kind of
- external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas are only more noble than
- mine. Come, what is your competence?"
- "About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year; not more than THAT."
- Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my wealth! I guessed how
- it would end."
- "And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income," said Marianne.
- "A family cannot well be maintained on a smaller. I am sure I am not
- extravagant in my demands. A proper establishment of servants, a
- carriage, perhaps two, and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
- Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing so accurately their
- future expenses at Combe Magna.
- "Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have hunters? Every body
- does not hunt."
- Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
- "I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought, "that somebody
- would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
- "Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes sparkling with
- animation, and her cheeks glowing with the delight of such imaginary
- happiness.
- "We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose," said Elinor, "in spite
- of the insufficiency of wealth."
- "Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be! I wonder what I
- should do with it!"
- Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
- "I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself," said Mrs.
- Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich without my help."
- "You must begin your improvements on this house," observed Elinor, "and
- your difficulties will soon vanish."
- "What magnificent orders would travel from this family to London," said
- Edward, "in such an event! What a happy day for booksellers,
- music-sellers, and print-shops! You, Miss Dashwood, would give a
- general commission for every new print of merit to be sent you--and as
- for Marianne, I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music
- enough in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
- Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she would buy up
- every copy, I believe, to prevent their falling into unworthy hands;
- and she would have every book that tells her how to admire an old
- twisted tree. Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very
- saucy. But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our old
- disputes."
- "I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it be melancholy or
- gay, I love to recall it--and you will never offend me by talking of
- former times. You are very right in supposing how my money would be
- spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly be employed
- in improving my collection of music and books."
- "And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out in annuities on the
- authors or their heirs."
- "No, Edward, I should have something else to do with it."
- "Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that person who
- wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim, that no one can ever
- be in love more than once in their life--your opinion on that point is
- unchanged, I presume?"
- "Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed. It is
- not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
- "Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor, "she is not
- at all altered."
- "She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
- "Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me. You are not
- very gay yourself."
- "Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh. "But gaiety never
- was a part of MY character."
- "Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor; "I should hardly
- call her a lively girl--she is very earnest, very eager in all she
- does--sometimes talks a great deal and always with animation--but she
- is not often really merry."
- "I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I have always set her
- down as a lively girl."
- "I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes," said
- Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some point or
- other: fancying people so much more gay or grave, or ingenious or
- stupid than they really are, and I can hardly tell why or in what the
- deception originated. Sometimes one is guided by what they say of
- themselves, and very frequently by what other people say of them,
- without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
- "But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne, "to be guided
- wholly by the opinion of other people. I thought our judgments were
- given us merely to be subservient to those of neighbours. This has
- always been your doctrine, I am sure."
- "No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed at the subjection of
- the understanding. All I have ever attempted to influence has been the
- behaviour. You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
- of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance in general with
- greater attention; but when have I advised you to adopt their
- sentiments or to conform to their judgment in serious matters?"
- "You have not been able to bring your sister over to your plan of
- general civility," said Edward to Elinor. "Do you gain no ground?"
- "Quite the contrary," replied Elinor, looking expressively at Marianne.
- "My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side of the question; but I
- am afraid my practice is much more on your sister's. I never wish to
- offend, but I am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent, when I
- am only kept back by my natural awkwardness. I have frequently thought
- that I must have been intended by nature to be fond of low company, I
- am so little at my ease among strangers of gentility!"
- "Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention of hers," said
- Elinor.
- "She knows her own worth too well for false shame," replied Edward.
- "Shyness is only the effect of a sense of inferiority in some way or
- other. If I could persuade myself that my manners were perfectly easy
- and graceful, I should not be shy."
- "But you would still be reserved," said Marianne, "and that is worse."
- Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
- "Yes, very."
- "I do not understand you," replied he, colouring. "Reserved!--how, in
- what manner? What am I to tell you? What can you suppose?"
- Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying to laugh off the
- subject, she said to him, "Do not you know my sister well enough to
- understand what she means? Do not you know she calls every one
- reserved who does not talk as fast, and admire what she admires as
- rapturously as herself?"
- Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness returned on him
- in their fullest extent--and he sat for some time silent and dull.
- CHAPTER 18
- Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits of her friend. His
- visit afforded her but a very partial satisfaction, while his own
- enjoyment in it appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was
- unhappy; she wished it were equally evident that he still distinguished
- her by the same affection which once she had felt no doubt of
- inspiring; but hitherto the continuance of his preference seemed very
- uncertain; and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
- one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
- He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room the next morning
- before the others were down; and Marianne, who was always eager to
- promote their happiness as far as she could, soon left them to
- themselves. But before she was half way upstairs she heard the parlour
- door open, and, turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself
- come out.
- "I am going into the village to see my horses," said he, "as you are
- not yet ready for breakfast; I shall be back again presently."
- ***
- Edward returned to them with fresh admiration of the surrounding
- country; in his walk to the village, he had seen many parts of the
- valley to advantage; and the village itself, in a much higher situation
- than the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
- exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured Marianne's
- attention, and she was beginning to describe her own admiration of
- these scenes, and to question him more minutely on the objects that had
- particularly struck him, when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You
- must not enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge in the
- picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance and want of taste
- if we come to particulars. I shall call hills steep, which ought to be
- bold; surfaces strange and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and
- rugged; and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
- indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere. You must be
- satisfied with such admiration as I can honestly give. I call it a
- very fine country--the hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine
- timber, and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich meadows
- and several neat farm houses scattered here and there. It exactly
- answers my idea of a fine country, because it unites beauty with
- utility--and I dare say it is a picturesque one too, because you admire
- it; I can easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories, grey
- moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me. I know nothing of
- the picturesque."
- "I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne; "but why should you
- boast of it?"
- "I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind of affectation,
- Edward here falls into another. Because he believes many people
- pretend to more admiration of the beauties of nature than they really
- feel, and is disgusted with such pretensions, he affects greater
- indifference and less discrimination in viewing them himself than he
- possesses. He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
- "It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration of landscape scenery
- is become a mere jargon. Every body pretends to feel and tries to
- describe with the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
- picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind, and sometimes I
- have kept my feelings to myself, because I could find no language to
- describe them in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and
- meaning."
- "I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel all the delight in
- a fine prospect which you profess to feel. But, in return, your sister
- must allow me to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
- but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked, twisted,
- blasted trees. I admire them much more if they are tall, straight, and
- flourishing. I do not like ruined, tattered cottages. I am not fond
- of nettles or thistles, or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a
- snug farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy, happy villages
- please me better than the finest banditti in the world."
- Marianne looked with amazement at Edward, with compassion at her
- sister. Elinor only laughed.
- The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne remained
- thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly engaged her attention.
- She was sitting by Edward, and in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood,
- his hand passed so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
- of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
- "I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried. "Is that
- Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give you some. But I should
- have thought her hair had been darker."
- Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--but when she saw
- how much she had pained Edward, her own vexation at her want of thought
- could not be surpassed by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a
- momentary glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair. The
- setting always casts a different shade on it, you know."
- Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise. That the hair
- was her own, she instantaneously felt as well satisfied as Marianne;
- the only difference in their conclusions was, that what Marianne
- considered as a free gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must
- have been procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
- She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront, and
- affecting to take no notice of what passed, by instantly talking of
- something else, she internally resolved henceforward to catch every
- opportunity of eyeing the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all
- doubt, that it was exactly the shade of her own.
- Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it ended in an absence of
- mind still more settled. He was particularly grave the whole morning.
- Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said; but her own
- forgiveness might have been more speedy, had she known how little
- offence it had given her sister.
- Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir John and Mrs.
- Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival of a gentleman at the
- cottage, came to take a survey of the guest. With the assistance of
- his mother-in-law, Sir John was not long in discovering that the name
- of Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine of raillery
- against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but the newness of their
- acquaintance with Edward could have prevented from being immediately
- sprung. But, as it was, she only learned, from some very significant
- looks, how far their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions,
- extended.
- Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either inviting them to
- dine at the park the next day, or to drink tea with them that evening.
- On the present occasion, for the better entertainment of their visitor,
- towards whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute, he wished
- to engage them for both.
- "You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he, "for we shall be quite
- alone--and tomorrow you must absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a
- large party."
- Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows but you may raise
- a dance," said she. "And that will tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
- "A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
- "Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers to be sure.--What!
- you thought nobody could dance because a certain person that shall be
- nameless is gone!"
- "I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John, "that Willoughby were among
- us again."
- This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions to Edward. "And who
- is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice, to Miss Dashwood, by whom he
- was sitting.
- She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance was more
- communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend, not only the meaning
- of others, but such of Marianne's expressions as had puzzled him
- before; and when their visitors left them, he went immediately round
- her, and said, in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
- my guess?"
- "What do you mean?"
- "Shall I tell you."
- "Certainly."
- "Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
- Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could not help smiling at
- the quiet archness of his manner, and after a moment's silence, said,
- "Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come I hope...I am sure
- you will like him."
- "I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished at her earnestness
- and warmth; for had he not imagined it to be a joke for the good of her
- acquaintance in general, founded only on a something or a nothing
- between Mr. Willoughby and herself, he would not have ventured to
- mention it.
- CHAPTER 19
- Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly pressed by Mrs.
- Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he were bent only on
- self-mortification, he seemed resolved to be gone when his enjoyment
- among his friends was at the height. His spirits, during the last two
- or three days, though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he
- grew more and more partial to the house and environs--never spoke of
- going away without a sigh--declared his time to be wholly
- disengaged--even doubted to what place he should go when he left
- them--but still, go he must. Never had any week passed so quickly--he
- could hardly believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other
- things he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave the
- lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland; he detested being
- in town; but either to Norland or London, he must go. He valued their
- kindness beyond any thing, and his greatest happiness was in being with
- them. Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite of their
- wishes and his own, and without any restraint on his time.
- Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this way of acting to his
- mother's account; and it was happy for her that he had a mother whose
- character was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general excuse
- for every thing strange on the part of her son. Disappointed, however,
- and vexed as she was, and sometimes displeased with his uncertain
- behaviour to herself, she was very well disposed on the whole to regard
- his actions with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
- which had been rather more painfully extorted from her, for
- Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits, of openness,
- and of consistency, were most usually attributed to his want of
- independence, and his better knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition
- and designs. The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
- in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination, the same
- inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother. The old
- well-established grievance of duty against will, parent against child,
- was the cause of all. She would have been glad to know when these
- difficulties were to cease, this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs.
- Ferrars would be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy. But
- from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort to the renewal
- of her confidence in Edward's affection, to the remembrance of every
- mark of regard in look or word which fell from him while at Barton, and
- above all to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore round
- his finger.
- "I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were at breakfast the
- last morning, "you would be a happier man if you had any profession to
- engage your time and give an interest to your plans and actions. Some
- inconvenience to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you would
- not be able to give them so much of your time. But (with a smile) you
- would be materially benefited in one particular at least--you would
- know where to go when you left them."
- "I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long thought on this point,
- as you think now. It has been, and is, and probably will always be a
- heavy misfortune to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage
- me, no profession to give me employment, or afford me any thing like
- independence. But unfortunately my own nicety, and the nicety of my
- friends, have made me what I am, an idle, helpless being. We never
- could agree in our choice of a profession. I always preferred the
- church, as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
- They recommended the army. That was a great deal too smart for me.
- The law was allowed to be genteel enough; many young men, who had
- chambers in the Temple, made a very good appearance in the first
- circles, and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had no
- inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse study of it, which
- my family approved. As for the navy, it had fashion on its side, but I
- was too old when the subject was first started to enter it--and, at
- length, as there was no necessity for my having any profession at all,
- as I might be as dashing and expensive without a red coat on my back as
- with one, idleness was pronounced on the whole to be most advantageous
- and honourable, and a young man of eighteen is not in general so
- earnestly bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
- friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford and have been
- properly idle ever since."
- "The consequence of which, I suppose, will be," said Mrs. Dashwood,
- "since leisure has not promoted your own happiness, that your sons will
- be brought up to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
- as Columella's."
- "They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent, "to be as
- unlike myself as is possible. In feeling, in action, in condition, in
- every thing."
- "Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate want of spirits,
- Edward. You are in a melancholy humour, and fancy that any one unlike
- yourself must be happy. But remember that the pain of parting from
- friends will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
- education or state. Know your own happiness. You want nothing but
- patience--or give it a more fascinating name, call it hope. Your
- mother will secure to you, in time, that independence you are so
- anxious for; it is her duty, and it will, it must ere long become her
- happiness to prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
- How much may not a few months do?"
- "I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many months to produce any
- good to me."
- This desponding turn of mind, though it could not be communicated to
- Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain to them all in the parting, which
- shortly took place, and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
- feelings especially, which required some trouble and time to subdue.
- But as it was her determination to subdue it, and to prevent herself
- from appearing to suffer more than what all her family suffered on his
- going away, she did not adopt the method so judiciously employed by
- Marianne, on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow, by
- seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means were as different
- as their objects, and equally suited to the advancement of each.
- Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he was out of the
- house, busily employed herself the whole day, neither sought nor
- avoided the mention of his name, appeared to interest herself almost as
- much as ever in the general concerns of the family, and if, by this
- conduct, she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
- from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters were spared much
- solicitude on her account.
- Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse of her own, appeared no
- more meritorious to Marianne, than her own had seemed faulty to her.
- The business of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
- affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could have no merit.
- That her sister's affections WERE calm, she dared not deny, though she
- blushed to acknowledge it; and of the strength of her own, she gave a
- very striking proof, by still loving and respecting that sister, in
- spite of this mortifying conviction.
- Without shutting herself up from her family, or leaving the house in
- determined solitude to avoid them, or lying awake the whole night to
- indulge meditation, Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
- to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every possible
- variety which the different state of her spirits at different times
- could produce,--with tenderness, pity, approbation, censure, and doubt.
- There were moments in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her
- mother and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
- conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect of solitude was
- produced. Her mind was inevitably at liberty; her thoughts could not
- be chained elsewhere; and the past and the future, on a subject so
- interesting, must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
- her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
- From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her drawing-table, she was
- roused one morning, soon after Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of
- company. She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the little
- gate, at the entrance of the green court in front of the house, drew
- her eyes to the window, and she saw a large party walking up to the
- door. Amongst them were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
- but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were quite unknown
- to her. She was sitting near the window, and as soon as Sir John
- perceived her, he left the rest of the party to the ceremony of
- knocking at the door, and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open
- the casement to speak to him, though the space was so short between the
- door and the window, as to make it hardly possible to speak at one
- without being heard at the other.
- "Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers. How do you like
- them?"
- "Hush! they will hear you."
- "Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers. Charlotte is very
- pretty, I can tell you. You may see her if you look this way."
- As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple of minutes, without
- taking that liberty, she begged to be excused.
- "Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we are come? I see her
- instrument is open."
- "She is walking, I believe."
- They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not patience enough to
- wait till the door was opened before she told HER story. She came
- hallooing to the window, "How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs.
- Dashwood do? And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you will be
- glad of a little company to sit with you. I have brought my other son
- and daughter to see you. Only think of their coming so suddenly! I
- thought I heard a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
- but it never entered my head that it could be them. I thought of
- nothing but whether it might not be Colonel Brandon come back again; so
- I said to Sir John, I do think I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel
- Brandon come back again"--
- Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle of her story, to
- receive the rest of the party; Lady Middleton introduced the two
- strangers; Mrs. Dashwood and Margaret came down stairs at the same
- time, and they all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
- continued her story as she walked through the passage into the parlour,
- attended by Sir John.
- Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady Middleton, and totally
- unlike her in every respect. She was short and plump, had a very
- pretty face, and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
- possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant as her sister's,
- but they were much more prepossessing. She came in with a smile,
- smiled all the time of her visit, except when she laughed, and smiled
- when she went away. Her husband was a grave looking young man of five
- or six and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than his wife,
- but of less willingness to please or be pleased. He entered the room
- with a look of self-consequence, slightly bowed to the ladies, without
- speaking a word, and, after briefly surveying them and their
- apartments, took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read
- it as long as he staid.
- Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed by nature with a
- turn for being uniformly civil and happy, was hardly seated before her
- admiration of the parlour and every thing in it burst forth.
- "Well! what a delightful room this is! I never saw anything so
- charming! Only think, Mama, how it is improved since I was here last!
- I always thought it such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs.
- Dashwood) but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister, how
- delightful every thing is! How I should like such a house for myself!
- Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
- Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise his eyes from the
- newspaper.
- "Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing; "he never does
- sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
- This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had never been used to
- find wit in the inattention of any one, and could not help looking with
- surprise at them both.
- Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud as she could, and
- continued her account of their surprise, the evening before, on seeing
- their friends, without ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer
- laughed heartily at the recollection of their astonishment, and every
- body agreed, two or three times over, that it had been quite an
- agreeable surprise.
- "You may believe how glad we all were to see them," added Mrs.
- Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor, and speaking in a low voice
- as if she meant to be heard by no one else, though they were seated on
- different sides of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they
- had not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey of it,
- for they came all round by London upon account of some business, for
- you know (nodding significantly and pointing to her daughter) it was
- wrong in her situation. I wanted her to stay at home and rest this
- morning, but she would come with us; she longed so much to see you all!"
- Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her any harm.
- "She expects to be confined in February," continued Mrs. Jennings.
- Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation, and
- therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there was any news in
- the paper.
- "No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
- "Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer, you shall see a
- monstrous pretty girl."
- He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door, and
- ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her, as soon as she
- appeared, if she had not been to Allenham; and Mrs. Palmer laughed so
- heartily at the question, as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer
- looked up on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes, and
- then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye was now caught by
- the drawings which hung round the room. She got up to examine them.
- "Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful! Do but
- look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming; I could look
- at them for ever." And then sitting down again, she very soon forgot
- that there were any such things in the room.
- When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer rose also, laid down
- the newspaper, stretched himself and looked at them all around.
- "My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
- He made her no answer; and only observed, after again examining the
- room, that it was very low pitched, and that the ceiling was crooked.
- He then made his bow, and departed with the rest.
- Sir John had been very urgent with them all to spend the next day at
- the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did not chuse to dine with them oftener
- than they dined at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
- her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no curiosity to
- see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner, and no expectation of
- pleasure from them in any other way. They attempted, therefore,
- likewise, to excuse themselves; the weather was uncertain, and not
- likely to be good. But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage
- should be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too, though
- she did not press their mother, pressed them. Mrs. Jennings and Mrs.
- Palmer joined their entreaties, all seemed equally anxious to avoid a
- family party; and the young ladies were obliged to yield.
- "Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they were gone.
- "The rent of this cottage is said to be low; but we have it on very
- hard terms, if we are to dine at the park whenever any one is staying
- either with them, or with us."
- "They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now," said Elinor, "by
- these frequent invitations, than by those which we received from them a
- few weeks ago. The alteration is not in them, if their parties are
- grown tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
- CHAPTER 20
- As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park the next
- day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at the other, looking as
- good humoured and merry as before. She took them all most
- affectionately by the hand, and expressed great delight in seeing them
- again.
- "I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself between Elinor and
- Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was afraid you might not come,
- which would be a shocking thing, as we go away again tomorrow. We must
- go, for the Westons come to us next week you know. It was quite a
- sudden thing our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the
- carriage was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
- would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never tells me any
- thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer; however we shall meet again
- in town very soon, I hope."
- They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
- "Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh, "I shall be quite
- disappointed if you do not. I could get the nicest house in the world for
- you, next door to ours, in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I
- am sure I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till I am
- confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go into public."
- They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all her entreaties.
- "Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband, who just then entered
- the room--"you must help me to persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to
- town this winter."
- Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing to the ladies, began
- complaining of the weather.
- "How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather makes every thing and
- every body disgusting. Dullness is as much produced within doors as
- without, by rain. It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What
- the devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room in his
- house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir John is as stupid as
- the weather."
- The rest of the company soon dropt in.
- "I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have not been able to
- take your usual walk to Allenham today."
- Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
- "Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer; "for we know all
- about it, I assure you; and I admire your taste very much, for I think
- he is extremely handsome. We do not live a great way from him in the
- country, you know. Not above ten miles, I dare say."
- "Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
- "Ah, well! there is not much difference. I never was at his house; but
- they say it is a sweet pretty place."
- "As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life," said Mr. Palmer.
- Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her countenance betrayed her
- interest in what was said.
- "Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it must be some other
- place that is so pretty I suppose."
- When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John observed with regret
- that they were only eight all together.
- "My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking that we should be
- so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts to come to us today?"
- "Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me about it before,
- that it could not be done? They dined with us last."
- "You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings, "should not stand upon such
- ceremony."
- "Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
- "My love you contradict every body," said his wife with her usual
- laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
- "I did not know I contradicted any body in calling your mother
- ill-bred."
- "Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured old lady,
- "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot give her back again.
- So there I have the whip hand of you."
- Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her husband could not get rid
- of her; and exultingly said, she did not care how cross he was to her,
- as they must live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
- thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy than Mrs.
- Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence, and discontent of her
- husband gave her no pain; and when he scolded or abused her, she was
- highly diverted.
- "Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper, to Elinor. "He is
- always out of humour."
- Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation, to give him credit
- for being so genuinely and unaffectedly ill-natured or ill-bred as he
- wished to appear. His temper might perhaps be a little soured by
- finding, like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
- bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
- woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too common for any
- sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.-- It was rather a wish of
- distinction, she believed, which produced his contemptuous treatment of
- every body, and his general abuse of every thing before him. It was
- the desire of appearing superior to other people. The motive was too
- common to be wondered at; but the means, however they might succeed by
- establishing his superiority in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach
- any one to him except his wife.
- "Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards, "I have
- got such a favour to ask of you and your sister. Will you come and
- spend some time at Cleveland this Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come
- while the Westons are with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be!
- It will be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband, "don't
- you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
- "Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came into Devonshire with no
- other view."
- "There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer expects you; so you
- cannot refuse to come."
- They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
- "But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you will like it of all
- things. The Westons will be with us, and it will be quite delightful.
- You cannot think what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay
- now, for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
- against the election; and so many people came to dine with us that I
- never saw before, it is quite charming! But, poor fellow! it is very
- fatiguing to him! for he is forced to make every body like him."
- Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she assented to the
- hardship of such an obligation.
- "How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he is in
- Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will be so ridiculous to
- see all his letters directed to him with an M.P.--But do you know, he
- says, he will never frank for me? He declares he won't. Don't you,
- Mr. Palmer?"
- Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
- "He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--"he says it is quite
- shocking."
- "No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational. Don't palm all
- your abuses of languages upon me."
- "There now; you see how droll he is. This is always the way with him!
- Sometimes he won't speak to me for half a day together, and then he
- comes out with something so droll--all about any thing in the world."
- She surprised Elinor very much as they returned into the drawing-room,
- by asking her whether she did not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
- "Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
- "Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would, he is so pleasant;
- and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased with you and your sisters I can
- tell you, and you can't think how disappointed he will be if you don't
- come to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object to it."
- Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation; and by changing the
- subject, put a stop to her entreaties. She thought it probable that as
- they lived in the same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
- more particular account of Willoughby's general character, than could
- be gathered from the Middletons' partial acquaintance with him; and she
- was eager to gain from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as
- might remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began by
- inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland, and whether
- they were intimately acquainted with him.
- "Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well," replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not
- that I ever spoke to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
- Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton while he was
- at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--but I was with my uncle
- at Weymouth. However, I dare say we should have seen a great deal of
- him in Somersetshire, if it had not happened very unluckily that we
- should never have been in the country together. He is very little at
- Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there, I do not think Mr.
- Palmer would visit him, for he is in the opposition, you know, and
- besides it is such a way off. I know why you inquire about him, very
- well; your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it, for then
- I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
- "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much more of the matter than
- I do, if you have any reason to expect such a match."
- "Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is what every body talks
- of. I assure you I heard of it in my way through town."
- "My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
- "Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon Monday morning in
- Bond-street, just before we left town, and he told me of it directly."
- "You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell you of it! Surely
- you must be mistaken. To give such intelligence to a person who could
- not be interested in it, even if it were true, is not what I should
- expect Colonel Brandon to do."
- "But I do assure you it was so, for all that, and I will tell you how
- it happened. When we met him, he turned back and walked with us; and
- so we began talking of my brother and sister, and one thing and
- another, and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family come to
- Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word they are very pretty,
- and that one of them is going to be married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe
- Magna. Is it true, pray? for of course you must know, as you have been
- in Devonshire so lately.'"
- "And what did the Colonel say?"
- "Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he knew it to be true, so
- from that moment I set it down as certain. It will be quite
- delightful, I declare! When is it to take place?"
- "Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
- "Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises, he did nothing but
- say fine things of you."
- "I am flattered by his commendation. He seems an excellent man; and I
- think him uncommonly pleasing."
- "So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it is quite a pity he should
- be so grave and so dull. Mama says HE was in love with your sister
- too.-- I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he hardly
- ever falls in love with any body."
- "Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part of Somersetshire?" said
- Elinor.
- "Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe many people are
- acquainted with him, because Combe Magna is so far off; but they all
- think him extremely agreeable I assure you. Nobody is more liked than
- Mr. Willoughby wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister. She
- is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour; not but that he
- is much more lucky in getting her, because she is so very handsome and
- agreeable, that nothing can be good enough for her. However, I don't
- think her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you; for I think
- you both excessively pretty, and so does Mr. Palmer too I am sure,
- though we could not get him to own it last night."
- Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby was not very material;
- but any testimony in his favour, however small, was pleasing to her.
- "I am so glad we are got acquainted at last," continued
- Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be great friends. You
- can't think how much I longed to see you! It is so delightful that you
- should live at the cottage! Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I
- am so glad your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will be
- a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place, by all accounts."
- "You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon, have not you?"
- "Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.-- He was a
- particular friend of Sir John's. I believe," she added in a low voice,
- "he would have been very glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John
- and Lady Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think the
- match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would have mentioned it to
- the Colonel, and we should have been married immediately."
- "Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal to your mother
- before it was made? Had he never owned his affection to yourself?"
- "Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it, I dare say he would have
- liked it of all things. He had not seen me then above twice, for it
- was before I left school. However, I am much happier as I am. Mr.
- Palmer is the kind of man I like."
- CHAPTER 21
- The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day, and the two families at
- Barton were again left to entertain each other. But this did not last
- long; Elinor had hardly got their last visitors out of her head, had
- hardly done wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause, at
- Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities, and at the strange
- unsuitableness which often existed between husband and wife, before Sir
- John's and Mrs. Jennings's active zeal in the cause of society,
- procured her some other new acquaintance to see and observe.
- In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with two young ladies,
- whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction of discovering to be her
- relations, and this was enough for Sir John to invite them directly to
- the park, as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
- Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before such an
- invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into no little alarm on the
- return of Sir John, by hearing that she was very soon to receive a
- visit from two girls whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose
- elegance,--whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof; for
- the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject went for
- nothing at all. Their being her relations too made it so much the
- worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts at consolation were therefore
- unfortunately founded, when she advised her daughter not to care about
- their being so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
- up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to prevent
- their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the idea of it, with
- all the philosophy of a well-bred woman, contenting herself with merely
- giving her husband a gentle reprimand on the subject five or six times
- every day.
- The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by no means ungenteel or
- unfashionable. Their dress was very smart, their manners very civil,
- they were delighted with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
- and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children that Lady
- Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their favour before they had
- been an hour at the Park. She declared them to be very agreeable girls
- indeed, which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration. Sir John's
- confidence in his own judgment rose with this animated praise, and he
- set off directly for the cottage to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss
- Steeles' arrival, and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
- in the world. From such commendation as this, however, there was not
- much to be learned; Elinor well knew that the sweetest girls in the
- world were to be met with in every part of England, under every
- possible variation of form, face, temper and understanding. Sir John
- wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly and look at his
- guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It was painful to him even to
- keep a third cousin to himself.
- "Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I declare you shall
- come--You can't think how you will like them. Lucy is monstrous
- pretty, and so good humoured and agreeable! The children are all
- hanging about her already, as if she was an old acquaintance. And they
- both long to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter that
- you are the most beautiful creatures in the world; and I have told them
- it is all very true, and a great deal more. You will be delighted with
- them I am sure. They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
- for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come? Why they
- are your cousins, you know, after a fashion. YOU are my cousins, and
- they are my wife's, so you must be related."
- But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain a promise of
- their calling at the Park within a day or two, and then left them in
- amazement at their indifference, to walk home and boast anew of their
- attractions to the Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the
- Miss Steeles to them.
- When their promised visit to the Park and consequent introduction to
- these young ladies took place, they found in the appearance of the
- eldest, who was nearly thirty, with a very plain and not a sensible
- face, nothing to admire; but in the other, who was not more than two or
- three and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her features
- were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye, and a smartness of air,
- which though it did not give actual elegance or grace, gave distinction
- to her person.-- Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
- allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she saw with what
- constant and judicious attention they were making themselves agreeable
- to Lady Middleton. With her children they were in continual raptures,
- extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring their
- whims; and such of their time as could be spared from the importunate
- demands which this politeness made on it, was spent in admiration of
- whatever her ladyship was doing, if she happened to be doing any thing,
- or in taking patterns of some elegant new dress, in which her
- appearance the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
- Fortunately for those who pay their court through such foibles, a fond
- mother, though, in pursuit of praise for her children, the most
- rapacious of human beings, is likewise the most credulous; her demands
- are exorbitant; but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
- affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards her offspring were
- viewed therefore by Lady Middleton without the smallest surprise or
- distrust. She saw with maternal complacency all the impertinent
- encroachments and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
- She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about their ears, their
- work-bags searched, and their knives and scissors stolen away, and felt
- no doubt of its being a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other
- surprise than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
- without claiming a share in what was passing.
- "John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his taking Miss Steeles's
- pocket handkerchief, and throwing it out of window--"He is full of
- monkey tricks."
- And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently pinching one of the
- same lady's fingers, she fondly observed, "How playful William is!"
- "And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added, tenderly caressing
- a little girl of three years old, who had not made a noise for the last
- two minutes; "And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
- such a quiet little thing!"
- But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces, a pin in her ladyship's
- head dress slightly scratching the child's neck, produced from this
- pattern of gentleness such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone
- by any creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation was
- excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the Miss Steeles, and
- every thing was done by all three, in so critical an emergency, which
- affection could suggest as likely to assuage the agonies of the little
- sufferer. She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses, her
- wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the Miss Steeles, who was
- on her knees to attend her, and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by
- the other. With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise to
- cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily, kicked her two
- brothers for offering to touch her, and all their united soothings were
- ineffectual till Lady Middleton luckily remembering that in a scene of
- similar distress last week, some apricot marmalade had been
- successfully applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
- proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight intermission of
- screams in the young lady on hearing it, gave them reason to hope that
- it would not be rejected.-- She was carried out of the room therefore
- in her mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the two boys
- chose to follow, though earnestly entreated by their mother to stay
- behind, the four young ladies were left in a quietness which the room
- had not known for many hours.
- "Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon as they were gone.
- "It might have been a very sad accident."
- "Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it had been under
- totally different circumstances. But this is the usual way of
- heightening alarm, where there is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
- "What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
- Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say what she did not
- feel, however trivial the occasion; and upon Elinor therefore the whole
- task of telling lies when politeness required it, always fell. She did
- her best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton with more
- warmth than she felt, though with far less than Miss Lucy.
- "And Sir John too," cried the elder sister, "what a charming man he is!"
- Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only simple and just,
- came in without any eclat. She merely observed that he was perfectly
- good humoured and friendly.
- "And what a charming little family they have! I never saw such fine
- children in my life.--I declare I quite doat upon them already, and
- indeed I am always distractedly fond of children."
- "I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile, "from what I have
- witnessed this morning."
- "I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little Middletons rather
- too much indulged; perhaps they may be the outside of enough; but it is
- so natural in Lady Middleton; and for my part, I love to see children
- full of life and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and
- quiet."
- "I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at Barton Park, I never
- think of tame and quiet children with any abhorrence."
- A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first broken by Miss
- Steele, who seemed very much disposed for conversation, and who now
- said rather abruptly, "And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood?
- I suppose you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
- In some surprise at the familiarity of this question, or at least of
- the manner in which it was spoken, Elinor replied that she was.
- "Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?" added Miss Steele.
- "We have heard Sir John admire it excessively," said Lucy, who seemed
- to think some apology necessary for the freedom of her sister.
- "I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor, "who ever saw the
- place; though it is not to be supposed that any one can estimate its
- beauties as we do."
- "And had you a great many smart beaux there? I suppose you have not so
- many in this part of the world; for my part, I think they are a vast
- addition always."
- "But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed of her sister,
- "that there are not as many genteel young men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
- "Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there an't. I'm
- sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter; but you know, how could
- I tell what smart beaux there might be about Norland; and I was only
- afraid the Miss Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
- so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies may not
- care about the beaux, and had as lief be without them as with them.
- For my part, I think they are vastly agreeable, provided they dress
- smart and behave civil. But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty.
- Now there's Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man, quite a
- beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you do but meet him of
- a morning, he is not fit to be seen.-- I suppose your brother was quite
- a beau, Miss Dashwood, before he married, as he was so rich?"
- "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you, for I do not
- perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word. But this I can say, that
- if he ever was a beau before he married, he is one still for there is
- not the smallest alteration in him."
- "Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being beaux--they have
- something else to do."
- "Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of nothing but
- beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you think of nothing else."
- And then to turn the discourse, she began admiring the house and the
- furniture.
- This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough. The vulgar freedom and
- folly of the eldest left her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not
- blinded by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest, to her want
- of real elegance and artlessness, she left the house without any wish
- of knowing them better.
- Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well provided with
- admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton, his family, and all his
- relations, and no niggardly proportion was now dealt out to his fair
- cousins, whom they declared to be the most beautiful, elegant,
- accomplished, and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
- they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.-- And to be
- better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found was their inevitable
- lot, for as Sir John was entirely on the side of the Miss Steeles,
- their party would be too strong for opposition, and that kind of
- intimacy must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour or two
- together in the same room almost every day. Sir John could do no more;
- but he did not know that any more was required: to be together was, in
- his opinion, to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
- meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being established
- friends.
- To do him justice, he did every thing in his power to promote their
- unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles acquainted with whatever he knew
- or supposed of his cousins' situations in the most delicate
- particulars,--and Elinor had not seen them more than twice, before the
- eldest of them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky as
- to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she came to Barton.
- "'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young to be sure," said
- she, "and I hear he is quite a beau, and prodigious handsome. And I
- hope you may have as good luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have
- a friend in the corner already."
- Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more nice in
- proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward, than he had been
- with respect to Marianne; indeed it was rather his favourite joke of
- the two, as being somewhat newer and more conjectural; and since
- Edward's visit, they had never dined together without his drinking to
- her best affections with so much significancy and so many nods and
- winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--had been likewise
- invariably brought forward, and found productive of such countless
- jokes, that its character as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had
- been long established with Elinor.
- The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the benefit of these
- jokes, and in the eldest of them they raised a curiosity to know the
- name of the gentleman alluded to, which, though often impertinently
- expressed, was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
- into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not sport long
- with the curiosity which he delighted to raise, for he had at least as
- much pleasure in telling the name, as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
- "His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper; "but pray do
- not tell it, for it's a great secret."
- "Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is the happy man, is he?
- What! your sister-in-law's brother, Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable
- young man to be sure; I know him very well."
- "How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally made an amendment
- to all her sister's assertions. "Though we have seen him once or twice
- at my uncle's, it is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
- Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise. "And who was this
- uncle? Where did he live? How came they acquainted?" She wished very
- much to have the subject continued, though she did not chuse to join in
- it herself; but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time in
- her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either in curiosity after
- petty information, or in a disposition to communicate it. The manner
- in which Miss Steele had spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for
- it struck her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
- of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something to his
- disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing, for no farther notice
- was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by Miss Steele when alluded to, or even
- openly mentioned by Sir John.
- CHAPTER 22
- Marianne, who had never much toleration for any thing like
- impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts, or even difference of
- taste from herself, was at this time particularly ill-disposed, from
- the state of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles, or to
- encourage their advances; and to the invariable coldness of her
- behaviour towards them, which checked every endeavour at intimacy on
- their side, Elinor principally attributed that preference of herself
- which soon became evident in the manners of both, but especially of
- Lucy, who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation, or of
- striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy and frank
- communication of her sentiments.
- Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often just and amusing; and
- as a companion for half an hour Elinor frequently found her agreeable;
- but her powers had received no aid from education: she was ignorant and
- illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement, her want of
- information in the most common particulars, could not be concealed from
- Miss Dashwood, in spite of her constant endeavour to appear to
- advantage. Elinor saw, and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities
- which education might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with
- less tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy, of
- rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions, her
- assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed; and she could have no
- lasting satisfaction in the company of a person who joined insincerity
- with ignorance; whose want of instruction prevented their meeting in
- conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct toward others made
- every shew of attention and deference towards herself perfectly
- valueless.
- "You will think my question an odd one, I dare say," said Lucy to her
- one day, as they were walking together from the park to the
- cottage--"but pray, are you personally acquainted with your
- sister-in-law's mother, Mrs. Ferrars?"
- Elinor DID think the question a very odd one, and her countenance
- expressed it, as she answered that she had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
- "Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I thought you must have
- seen her at Norland sometimes. Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what
- sort of a woman she is?"
- "No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real opinion of Edward's
- mother, and not very desirous of satisfying what seemed impertinent
- curiosity-- "I know nothing of her."
- "I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring about her in such a
- way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively as she spoke; "but perhaps
- there may be reasons--I wish I might venture; but however I hope you
- will do me the justice of believing that I do not mean to be
- impertinent."
- Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on for a few minutes in
- silence. It was broken by Lucy, who renewed the subject again by
- saying, with some hesitation,
- "I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious. I am sure I
- would rather do any thing in the world than be thought so by a person
- whose good opinion is so well worth having as yours. And I am sure I
- should not have the smallest fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be
- very glad of your advice how to manage in such an uncomfortable
- situation as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
- I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
- "I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment, "if it could
- be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her. But really I never
- understood that you were at all connected with that family, and
- therefore I am a little surprised, I confess, at so serious an inquiry
- into her character."
- "I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all wonder at it. But
- if I dared tell you all, you would not be so much surprised. Mrs.
- Ferrars is certainly nothing to me at present--but the time MAY
- come--how soon it will come must depend upon herself--when we may be
- very intimately connected."
- She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful, with only one side
- glance at her companion to observe its effect on her.
- "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean? Are you acquainted
- with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?" And she did not feel much
- delighted with the idea of such a sister-in-law.
- "No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I never saw him in my
- life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor, "to his eldest brother."
- What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment, that would have been as
- painful as it was strong, had not an immediate disbelief of the
- assertion attended it. She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement,
- unable to divine the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
- her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity, and felt in no
- danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
- "You may well be surprised," continued Lucy; "for to be sure you could
- have had no idea of it before; for I dare say he never dropped the
- smallest hint of it to you or any of your family; because it was always
- meant to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully kept so
- by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations know of it but
- Anne, and I never should have mentioned it to you, if I had not felt
- the greatest dependence in the world upon your secrecy; and I really
- thought my behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
- must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained. And I do not think
- Mr. Ferrars can be displeased, when he knows I have trusted you,
- because I know he has the highest opinion in the world of all your
- family, and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite as
- his own sisters."--She paused.
- Elinor for a few moments remained silent. Her astonishment at what she
- heard was at first too great for words; but at length forcing herself
- to speak, and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
- which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude-- "May I ask
- if your engagement is of long standing?"
- "We have been engaged these four years."
- "Four years!"
- "Yes."
- Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable to believe it.
- "I did not know," said she, "that you were even acquainted till the
- other day."
- "Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date. He was under my
- uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
- "Your uncle!"
- "Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk of Mr. Pratt?"
- "I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion of spirits, which
- increased with her increase of emotion.
- "He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple, near
- Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun, for my sister and me
- was often staying with my uncle, and it was there our engagement was
- formed, though not till a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he
- was almost always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
- into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and approbation of
- his mother; but I was too young, and loved him too well, to be so
- prudent as I ought to have been.-- Though you do not know him so well
- as me, Miss Dashwood, you must have seen enough of him to be sensible
- he is very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
- "Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what she said; but after
- a moment's reflection, she added, with revived security of Edward's
- honour and love, and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
- Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at what you tell me,
- that really--I beg your pardon; but surely there must be some mistake
- of person or name. We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
- "We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward Ferrars, the
- eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street, and brother of your
- sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood, is the person I mean; you must allow
- that I am not likely to be deceived as to the name of the man on who
- all my happiness depends."
- "It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity, "that I
- should never have heard him even mention your name."
- "No; considering our situation, it was not strange. Our first care has
- been to keep the matter secret.-- You knew nothing of me, or my family,
- and, therefore, there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
- to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his sister's
- suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough for his not mentioning it."
- She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her self-command did not
- sink with it.
- "Four years you have been engaged," said she with a firm voice.
- "Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have to wait. Poor
- Edward! It puts him quite out of heart." Then taking a small miniature
- from her pocket, she added, "To prevent the possibility of mistake, be
- so good as to look at this face. It does not do him justice, to be
- sure, but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person it was
- drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
- She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor saw the
- painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a too hasty decision, or
- her wish of detecting falsehood might suffer to linger in her mind, she
- could have none of its being Edward's face. She returned it almost
- instantly, acknowledging the likeness.
- "I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give him my picture in
- return, which I am very much vexed at, for he has been always so
- anxious to get it! But I am determined to set for it the very first
- opportunity."
- "You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly. They then
- proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
- "I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world of your faithfully
- keeping this secret, because you must know of what importance it is to
- us, not to have it reach his mother; for she would never approve of it,
- I dare say. I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
- proud woman."
- "I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor; "but you do me
- no more than justice in imagining that I may be depended on. Your
- secret is safe with me; but pardon me if I express some surprise at so
- unnecessary a communication. You must at least have felt that my being
- acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
- As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy, hoping to discover
- something in her countenance; perhaps the falsehood of the greatest
- part of what she had been saying; but Lucy's countenance suffered no
- change.
- "I was afraid you would think I was taking a great liberty with you,"
- said she, "in telling you all this. I have not known you long to be
- sure, personally at least, but I have known you and all your family by
- description a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as
- if you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case, I really
- thought some explanation was due to you after my making such particular
- inquiries about Edward's mother; and I am so unfortunate, that I have
- not a creature whose advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that
- knows of it, and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a
- great deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
- betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue, as you must
- perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest fright in the world
- t'other day, when Edward's name was mentioned by Sir John, lest she
- should out with it all. You can't think how much I go through in my
- mind from it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what I
- have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years. Every thing in
- such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing him so seldom--we can hardly
- meet above twice a-year. I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite
- broke."
- Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did not feel very
- compassionate.
- "Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes, "I think whether it
- would not be better for us both to break off the matter entirely." As
- she said this, she looked directly at her companion. "But then at
- other times I have not resolution enough for it.-- I cannot bear the
- thoughts of making him so miserable, as I know the very mention of such
- a thing would do. And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I
- don't think I could be equal to it. What would you advise me to do in
- such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you do yourself?"
- "Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question; "but I can give
- you no advice under such circumstances. Your own judgment must direct
- you."
- "To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes silence on both
- sides, "his mother must provide for him sometime or other; but poor
- Edward is so cast down by it! Did you not think him dreadful
- low-spirited when he was at Barton? He was so miserable when he left
- us at Longstaple, to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him
- quite ill."
- "Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
- "Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us. Did you think he
- came directly from town?"
- "No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of every fresh
- circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity; "I remember he told us, that
- he had been staying a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth." She
- remembered too, her own surprise at the time, at his mentioning nothing
- farther of those friends, at his total silence with respect even to
- their names.
- "Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?" repeated Lucy.
- "We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
- "I begged him to exert himself for fear you should suspect what was the
- matter; but it made him so melancholy, not being able to stay more than
- a fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.-- Poor fellow!--I
- am afraid it is just the same with him now; for he writes in wretched
- spirits. I heard from him just before I left Exeter;" taking a letter
- from her pocket and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor. "You
- know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is; but that is not
- written so well as usual.--He was tired, I dare say, for he had just
- filled the sheet to me as full as possible."
- Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt no longer. This
- picture, she had allowed herself to believe, might have been
- accidentally obtained; it might not have been Edward's gift; but a
- correspondence between them by letter, could subsist only under a
- positive engagement, could be authorised by nothing else; for a few
- moments, she was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she
- could hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary; and she
- struggled so resolutely against the oppression of her feelings, that
- her success was speedy, and for the time complete.
- "Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the letter into her
- pocket, "is the only comfort we have in such long separations. Yes, I
- have one other comfort in his picture, but poor Edward has not even
- THAT. If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy. I gave him
- a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at Longstaple last, and
- that was some comfort to him, he said, but not equal to a picture.
- Perhaps you might notice the ring when you saw him?"
- "I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice, under which was
- concealed an emotion and distress beyond any thing she had ever felt
- before. She was mortified, shocked, confounded.
- Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage, and the
- conversation could be continued no farther. After sitting with them a
- few minutes, the Miss Steeles returned to the Park, and Elinor was then
- at liberty to think and be wretched.
- [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
- CHAPTER 23
- However small Elinor's general dependence on Lucy's veracity might be,
- it was impossible for her on serious reflection to suspect it in the
- present case, where no temptation could be answerable to the folly of
- inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy had asserted to
- be true, therefore, Elinor could not, dared not longer doubt; supported
- as it was too on every side by such probabilities and proofs, and
- contradicted by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
- acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation for the rest,
- at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's visit near Plymouth,
- his melancholy state of mind, his dissatisfaction at his own prospects,
- his uncertain behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
- Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections, which had
- often surprised her, the picture, the letter, the ring, formed
- altogether such a body of evidence, as overcame every fear of
- condemning him unfairly, and established as a fact, which no partiality
- could set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment of such
- behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe, for a short time
- made her feel only for herself; but other ideas, other considerations,
- soon arose. Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he
- feigned a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement to
- Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might once have been,
- she could not believe it such at present. His affection was all her
- own. She could not be deceived in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny,
- all had been conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not an
- illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her. What a softener
- of the heart was this persuasion! How much could it not tempt her to
- forgive! He had been blamable, highly blamable, in remaining at
- Norland after he first felt her influence over him to be more than it
- ought to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he had injured
- her, how much more had he injured himself; if her case were pitiable,
- his was hopeless. His imprudence had made her miserable for a while;
- but it seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever being
- otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity; but HE, what had he
- to look forward to? Could he ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele;
- could he, were his affection for herself out of the question, with his
- integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind, be satisfied with a
- wife like her--illiterate, artful, and selfish?
- The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally blind him to every
- thing but her beauty and good nature; but the four succeeding
- years--years, which if rationally spent, give such improvement to the
- understanding, must have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
- while the same period of time, spent on her side in inferior society
- and more frivolous pursuits, had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity
- which might once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
- If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself, his difficulties
- from his mother had seemed great, how much greater were they now likely
- to be, when the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior in
- connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself. These
- difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated from Lucy, might not
- press very hard upon his patience; but melancholy was the state of the
- person by whom the expectation of family opposition and unkindness,
- could be felt as a relief!
- As these considerations occurred to her in painful succession, she wept
- for him, more than for herself. Supported by the conviction of having
- done nothing to merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the
- belief that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem, she thought
- she could even now, under the first smart of the heavy blow, command
- herself enough to guard every suspicion of the truth from her mother
- and sisters. And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
- that when she joined them at dinner only two hours after she had first
- suffered the extinction of all her dearest hopes, no one would have
- supposed from the appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
- in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever from the object
- of her love, and that Marianne was internally dwelling on the
- perfections of a man, of whose whole heart she felt thoroughly
- possessed, and whom she expected to see in every carriage which drove
- near their house.
- The necessity of concealing from her mother and Marianne, what had been
- entrusted in confidence to herself, though it obliged her to unceasing
- exertion, was no aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary it
- was a relief to her, to be spared the communication of what would give
- such affliction to them, and to be saved likewise from hearing that
- condemnation of Edward, which would probably flow from the excess of
- their partial affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
- equal to support.
- From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew she could receive
- no assistance, their tenderness and sorrow must add to her distress,
- while her self-command would neither receive encouragement from their
- example nor from their praise. She was stronger alone, and her own
- good sense so well supported her, that her firmness was as unshaken,
- her appearance of cheerfulness as invariable, as with regrets so
- poignant and so fresh, it was possible for them to be.
- Much as she had suffered from her first conversation with Lucy on the
- subject, she soon felt an earnest wish of renewing it; and this for
- more reasons than one. She wanted to hear many particulars of their
- engagement repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand what
- Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any sincerity in her
- declaration of tender regard for him, and she particularly wanted to
- convince Lucy, by her readiness to enter on the matter again, and her
- calmness in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested in
- it than as a friend, which she very much feared her involuntary
- agitation, in their morning discourse, must have left at least
- doubtful. That Lucy was disposed to be jealous of her appeared very
- probable: it was plain that Edward had always spoken highly in her
- praise, not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing to
- trust her on so short a personal acquaintance, with a secret so
- confessedly and evidently important. And even Sir John's joking
- intelligence must have had some weight. But indeed, while Elinor
- remained so well assured within herself of being really beloved by
- Edward, it required no other consideration of probabilities to make it
- natural that Lucy should be jealous; and that she was so, her very
- confidence was a proof. What other reason for the disclosure of the
- affair could there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of
- Lucy's superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him in future?
- She had little difficulty in understanding thus much of her rival's
- intentions, and while she was firmly resolved to act by her as every
- principle of honour and honesty directed, to combat her own affection
- for Edward and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
- herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy that her heart was
- unwounded. And as she could now have nothing more painful to hear on
- the subject than had already been told, she did not mistrust her own
- ability of going through a repetition of particulars with composure.
- But it was not immediately that an opportunity of doing so could be
- commanded, though Lucy was as well disposed as herself to take
- advantage of any that occurred; for the weather was not often fine
- enough to allow of their joining in a walk, where they might most
- easily separate themselves from the others; and though they met at
- least every other evening either at the park or cottage, and chiefly at
- the former, they could not be supposed to meet for the sake of
- conversation. Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
- Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure was ever given for
- a general chat, and none at all for particular discourse. They met for
- the sake of eating, drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
- or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
- One or two meetings of this kind had taken place, without affording
- Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy in private, when Sir John called at
- the cottage one morning, to beg, in the name of charity, that they
- would all dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged to
- attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be quite alone,
- except her mother and the two Miss Steeles. Elinor, who foresaw a
- fairer opening for the point she had in view, in such a party as this
- was likely to be, more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
- and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when her husband united
- them together in one noisy purpose, immediately accepted the
- invitation; Margaret, with her mother's permission, was equally
- compliant, and Marianne, though always unwilling to join any of their
- parties, was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
- seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
- The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily preserved from
- the frightful solitude which had threatened her. The insipidity of the
- meeting was exactly such as Elinor had expected; it produced not one
- novelty of thought or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
- than the whole of their discourse both in the dining parlour and
- drawing room: to the latter, the children accompanied them, and while
- they remained there, she was too well convinced of the impossibility of
- engaging Lucy's attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
- removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed, and Elinor
- began to wonder at herself for having ever entertained a hope of
- finding time for conversation at the park. They all rose up in
- preparation for a round game.
- "I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy, "you are not going to finish
- poor little Annamaria's basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt
- your eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make the dear
- little love some amends for her disappointment to-morrow, and then I
- hope she will not much mind it."
- This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly and replied,
- "Indeed you are very much mistaken, Lady Middleton; I am only waiting
- to know whether you can make your party without me, or I should have
- been at my filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
- for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now, I am
- resolved to finish the basket after supper."
- "You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--will you ring the
- bell for some working candles? My poor little girl would be sadly
- disappointed, I know, if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for
- though I told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends upon
- having it done."
- Lucy directly drew her work table near her and reseated herself with an
- alacrity and cheerfulness which seemed to infer that she could taste no
- greater delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
- Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others. No one made
- any objection but Marianne, who with her usual inattention to the forms
- of general civility, exclaimed, "Your Ladyship will have the goodness
- to excuse ME--you know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
- I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without farther
- ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
- Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven that SHE had never made
- so rude a speech.
- "Marianne can never keep long from that instrument you know, ma'am,"
- said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth away the offence; "and I do not
- much wonder at it; for it is the very best toned piano-forte I ever
- heard."
- The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
- "Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen to cut out, I may be
- of some use to Miss Lucy Steele, in rolling her papers for her; and
- there is so much still to be done to the basket, that it must be
- impossible I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening. I
- should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow me a share in it."
- "Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you for your help," cried Lucy,
- "for I find there is more to be done to it than I thought there was;
- and it would be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after
- all."
- "Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele-- "Dear little
- soul, how I do love her!"
- "You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor; "and as you really
- like the work, perhaps you will be as well pleased not to cut in till
- another rubber, or will you take your chance now?"
- Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals, and thus by a
- little of that address which Marianne could never condescend to
- practise, gained her own end, and pleased Lady Middleton at the same
- time. Lucy made room for her with ready attention, and the two fair
- rivals were thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
- utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work. The pianoforte at
- which Marianne, wrapped up in her own music and her own thoughts, had
- by this time forgotten that any body was in the room besides herself,
- was luckily so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might
- safely, under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
- subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
- CHAPTER 24
- In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
- "I should be undeserving of the confidence you have honoured me with,
- if I felt no desire for its continuance, or no farther curiosity on its
- subject. I will not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
- "Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking the ice; you have set my
- heart at ease by it; for I was somehow or other afraid I had offended
- you by what I told you that Monday."
- "Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me," and Elinor spoke
- it with the truest sincerity, "nothing could be farther from my
- intention than to give you such an idea. Could you have a motive for
- the trust, that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
- "And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little sharp eyes full of
- meaning, "there seemed to me to be a coldness and displeasure in your
- manner that made me quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was
- angry with me; and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for
- having took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs. But I am
- very glad to find it was only my own fancy, and that you really do not
- blame me. If you knew what a consolation it was to me to relieve my
- heart speaking to you of what I am always thinking of every moment of
- my life, your compassion would make you overlook every thing else I am
- sure."
- "Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great relief to you,
- to acknowledge your situation to me, and be assured that you shall
- never have reason to repent it. Your case is a very unfortunate one;
- you seem to me to be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have
- need of all your mutual affection to support you under them. Mr.
- Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
- "He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would be madness to
- marry upon that, though for my own part, I could give up every prospect
- of more without a sigh. I have been always used to a very small
- income, and could struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too
- well to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that his
- mother might give him if he married to please her. We must wait, it
- may be for many years. With almost every other man in the world, it
- would be an alarming prospect; but Edward's affection and constancy
- nothing can deprive me of I know."
- "That conviction must be every thing to you; and he is undoubtedly
- supported by the same trust in your's. If the strength of your
- reciprocal attachment had failed, as between many people, and under
- many circumstances it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
- your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
- Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful in guarding her countenance
- from every expression that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
- "Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty well put to the
- test, by our long, very long absence since we were first engaged, and
- it has stood the trial so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt
- it now. I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's alarm
- on that account from the first."
- Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh at this assertion.
- Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too by nature, and from
- our different situations in life, from his being so much more in the
- world than me, and our continual separation, I was enough inclined for
- suspicion, to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
- the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met, or any
- lowness of spirits that I could not account for, or if he had talked
- more of one lady than another, or seemed in any respect less happy at
- Longstaple than he used to be. I do not mean to say that I am
- particularly observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
- I am sure I could not be deceived."
- "All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty; but it can impose upon
- neither of us."
- "But what," said she after a short silence, "are your views? or have
- you none but that of waiting for Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a
- melancholy and shocking extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to
- this, and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense in which
- it may involve you, rather than run the risk of her displeasure for a
- while by owning the truth?"
- "If we could be certain that it would be only for a while! But Mrs.
- Ferrars is a very headstrong proud woman, and in her first fit of anger
- upon hearing it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert, and
- the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away all my inclination
- for hasty measures."
- "And for your own sake too, or you are carrying your disinterestedness
- beyond reason."
- Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
- "Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
- "Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he is very unlike his
- brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
- "A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had caught those
- words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.-- "Oh, they are talking of
- their favourite beaux, I dare say."
- "No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our favourite beaux
- are NOT great coxcombs."
- "I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not," said Mrs. Jennings,
- laughing heartily; "for he is one of the modestest, prettiest behaved
- young men I ever saw; but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little
- creature, there is no finding out who SHE likes."
- "Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round at them, "I dare
- say Lucy's beau is quite as modest and pretty behaved as Miss
- Dashwood's."
- Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip, and looked
- angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took place for some time.
- Lucy first put an end to it by saying in a lower tone, though Marianne
- was then giving them the powerful protection of a very magnificent
- concerto--
- "I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has lately come into my
- head, for bringing matters to bear; indeed I am bound to let you into
- the secret, for you are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen
- enough of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every other
- profession; now my plan is that he should take orders as soon as he
- can, and then through your interest, which I am sure you would be kind
- enough to use out of friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard
- to me, your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
- which I understand is a very good one, and the present incumbent not
- likely to live a great while. That would be enough for us to marry
- upon, and we might trust to time and chance for the rest."
- "I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show any mark of my
- esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars; but do you not perceive that my
- interest on such an occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is
- brother to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough to
- her husband."
- "But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve of Edward's going into
- orders."
- "Then I rather suspect that my interest would do very little."
- They were again silent for many minutes. At length Lucy exclaimed with
- a deep sigh,
- "I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end to the business at
- once by dissolving the engagement. We seem so beset with difficulties
- on every side, that though it would make us miserable for a time, we
- should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will not give me your
- advice, Miss Dashwood?"
- "No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed very agitated
- feelings, "on such a subject I certainly will not. You know very well
- that my opinion would have no weight with you, unless it were on the
- side of your wishes."
- "Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great solemnity; "I know
- nobody of whose judgment I think so highly as I do of yours; and I do
- really believe, that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all
- means to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars, it will be
- more for the happiness of both of you,' I should resolve upon doing it
- immediately."
- Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's future wife, and
- replied, "This compliment would effectually frighten me from giving any
- opinion on the subject had I formed one. It raises my influence much
- too high; the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached is too
- much for an indifferent person."
- "'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy, with some
- pique, and laying a particular stress on those words, "that your
- judgment might justly have such weight with me. If you could be
- supposed to be biased in any respect by your own feelings, your opinion
- would not be worth having."
- Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this, lest they might
- provoke each other to an unsuitable increase of ease and unreserve; and
- was even partly determined never to mention the subject again. Another
- pause therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech, and
- Lucy was still the first to end it.
- "Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?" said she with all
- her accustomary complacency.
- "Certainly not."
- "I am sorry for that," returned the other, while her eyes brightened at
- the information, "it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you
- there! But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure, your
- brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
- "It will not be in my power to accept their invitation if they do."
- "How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon meeting you there.
- Anne and me are to go the latter end of January to some relations who
- have been wanting us to visit them these several years! But I only go
- for the sake of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
- London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
- Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the conclusion of the first
- rubber, and the confidential discourse of the two ladies was therefore
- at an end, to which both of them submitted without any reluctance, for
- nothing had been said on either side to make them dislike each other
- less than they had done before; and Elinor sat down to the card table
- with the melancholy persuasion that Edward was not only without
- affection for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had not
- even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage, which sincere
- affection on HER side would have given, for self-interest alone could
- induce a woman to keep a man to an engagement, of which she seemed so
- thoroughly aware that he was weary.
- From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor, and when
- entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity of introducing it,
- and was particularly careful to inform her confidante, of her happiness
- whenever she received a letter from Edward, it was treated by the
- former with calmness and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility
- would allow; for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
- Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
- The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was lengthened far beyond
- what the first invitation implied. Their favour increased; they could
- not be spared; Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite of
- their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter, in spite of the
- absolute necessity of returning to fulfill them immediately, which was
- in full force at the end of every week, they were prevailed on to stay
- nearly two months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration of
- that festival which requires a more than ordinary share of private
- balls and large dinners to proclaim its importance.
- CHAPTER 25
- Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large portion of
- the year at the houses of her children and friends, she was not without
- a settled habitation of her own. Since the death of her husband, who
- had traded with success in a less elegant part of the town, she had
- resided every winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman
- Square. Towards this home, she began on the approach of January to
- turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly, and very
- unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses Dashwood to accompany her.
- Elinor, without observing the varying complexion of her sister, and the
- animated look which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
- a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she believed herself
- to be speaking their united inclinations. The reason alleged was their
- determined resolution of not leaving their mother at that time of the
- year. Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise, and
- repeated her invitation immediately.
- "Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you very well, and I DO beg
- you will favour me with your company, for I've quite set my heart upon
- it. Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me, for I shan't
- put myself at all out of my way for you. It will only be sending Betty
- by the coach, and I hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to
- go very well in my chaise; and when we are in town, if you do not like
- to go wherever I do, well and good, you may always go with one of my
- daughters. I am sure your mother will not object to it; for I have had
- such good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she will
- think me a very fit person to have the charge of you; and if I don't
- get one of you at least well married before I have done with you, it
- shall not be my fault. I shall speak a good word for you to all the
- young men, you may depend upon it."
- "I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne would not object
- to such a scheme, if her elder sister would come into it. It is very
- hard indeed that she should not have a little pleasure, because Miss
- Dashwood does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off for
- town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying a word to Miss
- Dashwood about it."
- "Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be monstrous glad of
- Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss Dashwood will go or not, only the
- more the merrier say I, and I thought it would be more comfortable for
- them to be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
- to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back. But one or
- the other, if not both of them, I must have. Lord bless me! how do you
- think I can live poking by myself, I who have been always used till
- this winter to have Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us
- strike hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change her
- mind by and bye, why so much the better."
- "I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne, with warmth:
- "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever, and it would give
- me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest happiness I am capable of,
- to be able to accept it. But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I
- feel the justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be made
- less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no, nothing should
- tempt me to leave her. It should not, must not be a struggle."
- Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood could spare
- them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now understood her sister, and saw
- to what indifference to almost every thing else she was carried by her
- eagerness to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
- opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her mother's
- decision, from whom however she scarcely expected to receive any
- support in her endeavour to prevent a visit, which she could not
- approve of for Marianne, and which on her own account she had
- particular reasons to avoid. Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her
- mother would be eager to promote--she could not expect to influence the
- latter to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she had
- never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she dared not explain
- the motive of her own disinclination for going to London. That
- Marianne, fastidious as she was, thoroughly acquainted with Mrs.
- Jennings' manners, and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook
- every inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever must be
- most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her pursuit of one object,
- was such a proof, so strong, so full, of the importance of that object
- to her, as Elinor, in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to
- witness.
- On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood, persuaded that such
- an excursion would be productive of much amusement to both her
- daughters, and perceiving through all her affectionate attention to
- herself, how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear of
- their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on their both
- accepting it directly; and then began to foresee, with her usual
- cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that would accrue to them all,
- from this separation.
- "I am delighted with the plan," she cried, "it is exactly what I could
- wish. Margaret and I shall be as much benefited by it as yourselves.
- When you and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly and
- happily together with our books and our music! You will find Margaret
- so improved when you come back again! I have a little plan of
- alteration for your bedrooms too, which may now be performed without
- any inconvenience to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to
- town; I would have every young woman of your condition in life
- acquainted with the manners and amusements of London. You will be
- under the care of a motherly good sort of woman, of whose kindness to
- you I can have no doubt. And in all probability you will see your
- brother, and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
- when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so wholly
- estranged from each other."
- "Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness," said Elinor, "you
- have been obviating every impediment to the present scheme which
- occurred to you, there is still one objection which, in my opinion,
- cannot be so easily removed."
- Marianne's countenance sunk.
- "And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent Elinor going to
- suggest? What formidable obstacle is she now to bring forward? Do let
- me hear a word about the expense of it."
- "My objection is this; though I think very well of Mrs. Jennings's
- heart, she is not a woman whose society can afford us pleasure, or
- whose protection will give us consequence."
- "That is very true," replied her mother, "but of her society,
- separately from that of other people, you will scarcely have any thing
- at all, and you will almost always appear in public with Lady
- Middleton."
- "If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of Mrs. Jennings," said
- Marianne, "at least it need not prevent MY accepting her invitation. I
- have no such scruples, and I am sure I could put up with every
- unpleasantness of that kind with very little effort."
- Elinor could not help smiling at this display of indifference towards
- the manners of a person, to whom she had often had difficulty in
- persuading Marianne to behave with tolerable politeness; and resolved
- within herself, that if her sister persisted in going, she would go
- likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne should be left
- to the sole guidance of her own judgment, or that Mrs. Jennings should
- be abandoned to the mercy of Marianne for all the comfort of her
- domestic hours. To this determination she was the more easily
- reconciled, by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account, was
- not to be in town before February; and that their visit, without any
- unreasonable abridgement, might be previously finished.
- "I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood; "these objections are
- nonsensical. You will have much pleasure in being in London, and
- especially in being together; and if Elinor would ever condescend to
- anticipate enjoyment, she would foresee it there from a variety of
- sources; she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
- acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
- Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of attempting to weaken her
- mother's dependence on the attachment of Edward and herself, that the
- shock might be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now on this
- attack, though almost hopeless of success, she forced herself to begin
- her design by saying, as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars
- very much, and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest of
- the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference to me, whether I am
- ever known to them or not."
- Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing. Marianne lifted up her eyes in
- astonishment, and Elinor conjectured that she might as well have held
- her tongue.
- After very little farther discourse, it was finally settled that the
- invitation should be fully accepted. Mrs. Jennings received the
- information with a great deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness
- and care; nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John was
- delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety was the dread of
- being alone, the acquisition of two, to the number of inhabitants in
- London, was something. Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being
- delighted, which was putting herself rather out of her way; and as for
- the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had never been so happy in
- their lives as this intelligence made them.
- Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted her wishes with
- less reluctance than she had expected to feel. With regard to herself,
- it was now a matter of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and
- when she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan, and her
- sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner, restored to all
- her usual animation, and elevated to more than her usual gaiety, she
- could not be dissatisfied with the cause, and would hardly allow
- herself to distrust the consequence.
- Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness, so great was the
- perturbation of her spirits and her impatience to be gone. Her
- unwillingness to quit her mother was her only restorative to calmness;
- and at the moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
- Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor was the only one of
- the three, who seemed to consider the separation as any thing short of
- eternal.
- Their departure took place in the first week in January. The
- Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss Steeles kept their
- station at the park, and were to quit it only with the rest of the
- family.
- CHAPTER 26
- Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings, and
- beginning a journey to London under her protection, and as her guest,
- without wondering at her own situation, so short had their acquaintance
- with that lady been, so wholly unsuited were they in age and
- disposition, and so many had been her objections against such a measure
- only a few days before! But these objections had all, with that happy
- ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother equally shared, been
- overcome or overlooked; and Elinor, in spite of every occasional doubt
- of Willoughby's constancy, could not witness the rapture of delightful
- expectation which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes of
- Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect, how cheerless
- her own state of mind in the comparison, and how gladly she would
- engage in the solicitude of Marianne's situation to have the same
- animating object in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a
- very short time however must now decide what Willoughby's intentions
- were; in all probability he was already in town. Marianne's eagerness
- to be gone declared her dependence on finding him there; and Elinor was
- resolved not only upon gaining every new light as to his character
- which her own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
- but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister with such
- zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was and what he meant,
- before many meetings had taken place. Should the result of her
- observations be unfavourable, she was determined at all events to open
- the eyes of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions would be
- of a different nature--she must then learn to avoid every selfish
- comparison, and banish every regret which might lessen her satisfaction
- in the happiness of Marianne.
- They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's behaviour as they
- travelled was a happy specimen of what future complaisance and
- companionableness to Mrs. Jennings might be expected to be. She sat in
- silence almost all the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely
- ever voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque beauty
- within their view drew from her an exclamation of delight exclusively
- addressed to her sister. To atone for this conduct therefore, Elinor
- took immediate possession of the post of civility which she had
- assigned herself, behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
- talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her whenever she
- could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side treated them both with all
- possible kindness, was solicitous on every occasion for their ease and
- enjoyment, and only disturbed that she could not make them choose their
- own dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their preferring
- salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets. They reached town by
- three o'clock the third day, glad to be released, after such a journey,
- from the confinement of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury
- of a good fire.
- The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up, and the young ladies
- were immediately put in possession of a very comfortable apartment. It
- had formerly been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung a
- landscape in coloured silks of her performance, in proof of her having
- spent seven years at a great school in town to some effect.
- As dinner was not to be ready in less than two hours from their
- arrival, Elinor determined to employ the interval in writing to her
- mother, and sat down for that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did
- the same. "I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
- better defer your letter for a day or two?"
- "I am NOT going to write to my mother," replied Marianne, hastily, and
- as if wishing to avoid any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it
- immediately struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby; and
- the conclusion which as instantly followed was, that, however
- mysteriously they might wish to conduct the affair, they must be
- engaged. This conviction, though not entirely satisfactory, gave her
- pleasure, and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
- Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes; in length it could be no
- more than a note; it was then folded up, sealed, and directed with
- eager rapidity. Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in the
- direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne, ringing the
- bell, requested the footman who answered it to get that letter conveyed
- for her to the two-penny post. This decided the matter at once.
- Her spirits still continued very high; but there was a flutter in them
- which prevented their giving much pleasure to her sister, and this
- agitation increased as the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any
- dinner, and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room, seemed
- anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
- It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings, by being much
- engaged in her own room, could see little of what was passing. The tea
- things were brought in, and already had Marianne been disappointed more
- than once by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
- heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house, Elinor
- felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach, and Marianne,
- starting up, moved towards the door. Every thing was silent; this
- could not be borne many seconds; she opened the door, advanced a few
- steps towards the stairs, and after listening half a minute, returned
- into the room in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
- him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her feelings at that
- instant she could not help exclaiming, "Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby,
- indeed it is!" and seemed almost ready to throw herself into his arms,
- when Colonel Brandon appeared.
- It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness, and she immediately
- left the room. Elinor was disappointed too; but at the same time her
- regard for Colonel Brandon ensured his welcome with her; and she felt
- particularly hurt that a man so partial to her sister should perceive
- that she experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing
- him. She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him, that he even
- observed Marianne as she quitted the room, with such astonishment and
- concern, as hardly left him the recollection of what civility demanded
- towards herself.
- "Is your sister ill?" said he.
- Elinor answered in some distress that she was, and then talked of
- head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues; and of every thing to which
- she could decently attribute her sister's behaviour.
- He heard her with the most earnest attention, but seeming to recollect
- himself, said no more on the subject, and began directly to speak of
- his pleasure at seeing them in London, making the usual inquiries about
- their journey, and the friends they had left behind.
- In this calm kind of way, with very little interest on either side,
- they continued to talk, both of them out of spirits, and the thoughts
- of both engaged elsewhere. Elinor wished very much to ask whether
- Willoughby were then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain by
- any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way of saying something,
- she asked if he had been in London ever since she had seen him last.
- "Yes," he replied, with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have
- been once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never been in
- my power to return to Barton."
- This, and the manner in which it was said, immediately brought back to
- her remembrance all the circumstances of his quitting that place, with
- the uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings, and she
- was fearful that her question had implied much more curiosity on the
- subject than she had ever felt.
- Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she, with her usual
- noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad to see you--sorry I could not
- come before--beg your pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a
- little, and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I have been
- at home, and you know one has always a world of little odd things to do
- after one has been away for any time; and then I have had Cartwright to
- settle with-- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
- But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should be in town
- today?"
- "I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's, where I have been
- dining."
- "Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their house? How does
- Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine size by this time."
- "Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned to tell you,
- that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
- "Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel, I have brought two
- young ladies with me, you see--that is, you see but one of them now,
- but there is another somewhere. Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which
- you will not be sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr.
- Willoughby will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing to be
- young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I never was very
- handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got a very good husband, and I
- don't know what the greatest beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has
- been dead these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have you
- been to since we parted? And how does your business go on? Come,
- come, let's have no secrets among friends."
- He replied with his accustomary mildness to all her inquiries, but
- without satisfying her in any. Elinor now began to make the tea, and
- Marianne was obliged to appear again.
- After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became more thoughtful and silent
- than he had been before, and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to
- stay long. No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies were
- unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
- Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits and happy looks.
- The disappointment of the evening before seemed forgotten in the
- expectation of what was to happen that day. They had not long finished
- their breakfast before Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and
- in a few minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted to see
- them all, that it was hard to say whether she received most pleasure
- from meeting her mother or the Miss Dashwoods again. So surprised at
- their coming to town, though it was what she had rather expected all
- along; so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation after having
- declined her own, though at the same time she would never have forgiven
- them if they had not come!
- "Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you," said she; "What do you think
- he said when he heard of your coming with Mama? I forget what it was
- now, but it was something so droll!"
- After an hour or two spent in what her mother called comfortable chat,
- or in other words, in every variety of inquiry concerning all their
- acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side, and in laughter without cause on
- Mrs. Palmer's, it was proposed by the latter that they should all
- accompany her to some shops where she had business that morning, to
- which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented, as having likewise
- some purchases to make themselves; and Marianne, though declining it at
- first was induced to go likewise.
- Wherever they went, she was evidently always on the watch. In Bond
- Street especially, where much of their business lay, her eyes were in
- constant inquiry; and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind
- was equally abstracted from every thing actually before them, from all
- that interested and occupied the others. Restless and dissatisfied
- every where, her sister could never obtain her opinion of any article
- of purchase, however it might equally concern them both: she received
- no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at home again, and
- could with difficulty govern her vexation at the tediousness of Mrs.
- Palmer, whose eye was caught by every thing pretty, expensive, or new;
- who was wild to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
- time in rapture and indecision.
- It was late in the morning before they returned home; and no sooner had
- they entered the house than Marianne flew eagerly up stairs, and when
- Elinor followed, she found her turning from the table with a sorrowful
- countenance, which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
- "Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?" said she to
- the footman who then entered with the parcels. She was answered in the
- negative. "Are you quite sure of it?" she replied. "Are you certain
- that no servant, no porter has left any letter or note?"
- The man replied that none had.
- "How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed voice, as she
- turned away to the window.
- "How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself, regarding her sister
- with uneasiness. "If she had not known him to be in town she would not
- have written to him, as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
- and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither come nor write!
- Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong in permitting an engagement
- between a daughter so young, a man so little known, to be carried on in
- so doubtful, so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will
- MY interference be borne."
- She determined, after some consideration, that if appearances continued
- many days longer as unpleasant as they now were, she would represent in
- the strongest manner to her mother the necessity of some serious
- enquiry into the affair.
- Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's intimate
- acquaintance, whom she had met and invited in the morning, dined with
- them. The former left them soon after tea to fulfill her evening
- engagements; and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
- for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions, as she
- would never learn the game; but though her time was therefore at her
- own disposal, the evening was by no means more productive of pleasure
- to her than to Elinor, for it was spent in all the anxiety of
- expectation and the pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured
- for a few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside, and she
- returned to the more interesting employment of walking backwards and
- forwards across the room, pausing for a moment whenever she came to the
- window, in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
- CHAPTER 27
- "If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings, when they
- met at breakfast the following morning, "Sir John will not like leaving
- Barton next week; 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's
- pleasure. Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem to
- take it so much to heart."
- "That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice, and walking to the
- window as she spoke, to examine the day. "I had not thought of that.
- This weather will keep many sportsmen in the country."
- It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were restored by it.
- "It is charming weather for THEM indeed," she continued, as she sat
- down to the breakfast table with a happy countenance. "How much they
- must enjoy it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot be
- expected to last long. At this time of the year, and after such a
- series of rain, we shall certainly have very little more of it. Frosts
- will soon set in, and in all probability with severity. In another day
- or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last longer--nay,
- perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
- "At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent Mrs. Jennings from
- seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly as she did, "I dare say we
- shall have Sir John and Lady Middleton in town by the end of next week."
- "Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always has her own way."
- "And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will write to Combe by
- this day's post."
- But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away with a privacy
- which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain the fact. Whatever the
- truth of it might be, and far as Elinor was from feeling thorough
- contentment about it, yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could
- not be very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits; happy
- in the mildness of the weather, and still happier in her expectation of
- a frost.
- The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at the houses of Mrs.
- Jennings's acquaintance to inform them of her being in town; and
- Marianne was all the time busy in observing the direction of the wind,
- watching the variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the
- air.
- "Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning, Elinor? There
- seems to me a very decided difference. I can hardly keep my hands warm
- even in my muff. It was not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem
- parting too, the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a clear
- afternoon."
- Elinor was alternately diverted and pained; but Marianne persevered,
- and saw every night in the brightness of the fire, and every morning in
- the appearance of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching
- frost.
- The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be dissatisfied with Mrs.
- Jennings's style of living, and set of acquaintance, than with her
- behaviour to themselves, which was invariably kind. Every thing in her
- household arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan, and
- excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady Middleton's regret, she
- had never dropped, she visited no one to whom an introduction could at
- all discompose the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
- herself more comfortably situated in that particular than she had
- expected, Elinor was very willing to compound for the want of much real
- enjoyment from any of their evening parties, which, whether at home or
- abroad, formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
- Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation to the house, was with
- them almost every day; he came to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor,
- who often derived more satisfaction from conversing with him than from
- any other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time with much
- concern his continued regard for her sister. She feared it was a
- strengthening regard. It grieved her to see the earnestness with which
- he often watched Marianne, and his spirits were certainly worse than
- when at Barton.
- About a week after their arrival, it became certain that Willoughby was
- also arrived. His card was on the table when they came in from the
- morning's drive.
- "Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while we were out."
- Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his being in London, now ventured to
- say, "Depend upon it, he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne
- seemed hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jennings's entrance, escaped with
- the precious card.
- This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor, restored to those of
- her sister all, and more than all, their former agitation. From this
- moment her mind was never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every
- hour of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted on being
- left behind, the next morning, when the others went out.
- Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing in Berkeley Street
- during their absence; but a moment's glance at her sister when they
- returned was enough to inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second
- visit there. A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table.
- "For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
- "No, ma'am, for my mistress."
- But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
- "It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
- "You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor, unable to be longer
- silent.
- "Yes, a little--not much."
- After a short pause. "You have no confidence in me, Marianne."
- "Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have confidence in no
- one!"
- "Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed, Marianne, I have
- nothing to tell."
- "Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations then are alike.
- We have neither of us any thing to tell; you, because you do not
- communicate, and I, because I conceal nothing."
- Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself, which she was
- not at liberty to do away, knew not how, under such circumstances, to
- press for greater openness in Marianne.
- Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being given her, she read it
- aloud. It was from Lady Middleton, announcing their arrival in Conduit
- Street the night before, and requesting the company of her mother and
- cousins the following evening. Business on Sir John's part, and a
- violent cold on her own, prevented their calling in Berkeley Street.
- The invitation was accepted; but when the hour of appointment drew
- near, necessary as it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that
- they should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some difficulty
- in persuading her sister to go, for still she had seen nothing of
- Willoughby; and therefore was not more indisposed for amusement abroad,
- than unwilling to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
- Elinor found, when the evening was over, that disposition is not
- materially altered by a change of abode, for although scarcely settled
- in town, Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
- young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was an affair,
- however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve. In the country, an
- unpremeditated dance was very allowable; but in London, where the
- reputation of elegance was more important and less easily attained, it
- was risking too much for the gratification of a few girls, to have it
- known that Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine
- couple, with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
- Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former, whom they had
- not seen before since their arrival in town, as he was careful to avoid
- the appearance of any attention to his mother-in-law, and therefore
- never came near her, they received no mark of recognition on their
- entrance. He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know who they
- were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from the other side of the
- room. Marianne gave one glance round the apartment as she entered: it
- was enough--HE was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed to
- receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been assembled about
- an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards the Miss Dashwoods to express his
- surprise on seeing them in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first
- informed of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
- something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
- "I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
- "Did you?" replied Elinor.
- "When do you go back again?"
- "I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
- Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance in her life, as she was
- that evening, and never so much fatigued by the exercise. She
- complained of it as they returned to Berkeley Street.
- "Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason of all that very
- well; if a certain person who shall be nameless, had been there, you
- would not have been a bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very
- pretty of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
- "Invited!" cried Marianne.
- "So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir John met him
- somewhere in the street this morning." Marianne said no more, but
- looked exceedingly hurt. Impatient in this situation to be doing
- something that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved to
- write the next morning to her mother, and hoped by awakening her fears
- for the health of Marianne, to procure those inquiries which had been
- so long delayed; and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure by
- perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne was again
- writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose it to be to any other
- person.
- About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by herself on
- business, and Elinor began her letter directly, while Marianne, too
- restless for employment, too anxious for conversation, walked from one
- window to the other, or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
- Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother, relating all
- that had passed, her suspicions of Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her
- by every plea of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
- of her real situation with respect to him.
- Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap foretold a visitor, and
- Colonel Brandon was announced. Marianne, who had seen him from the
- window, and who hated company of any kind, left the room before he
- entered it. He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
- satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he had somewhat in
- particular to tell her, sat for some time without saying a word.
- Elinor, persuaded that he had some communication to make in which her
- sister was concerned, impatiently expected its opening. It was not the
- first time of her feeling the same kind of conviction; for, more than
- once before, beginning with the observation of "your sister looks
- unwell to-day," or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
- on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring, something
- particular about her. After a pause of several minutes, their silence
- was broken, by his asking her in a voice of some agitation, when he was
- to congratulate her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
- prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready, was obliged
- to adopt the simple and common expedient, of asking what he meant? He
- tried to smile as he replied, "your sister's engagement to Mr.
- Willoughby is very generally known."
- "It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor, "for her own family do
- not know it."
- He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon, I am afraid my
- inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not supposed any secrecy
- intended, as they openly correspond, and their marriage is universally
- talked of."
- "How can that be? By whom can you have heard it mentioned?"
- "By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others with whom you are
- most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer, and the Middletons. But
- still I might not have believed it, for where the mind is perhaps
- rather unwilling to be convinced, it will always find something to
- support its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
- accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to Mr. Willoughby in
- your sister's writing. I came to inquire, but I was convinced before I
- could ask the question. Is every thing finally settled? Is it
- impossible to-? But I have no right, and I could have no chance of
- succeeding. Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong in
- saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on your prudence I
- have the strongest dependence. Tell me that it is all absolutely
- resolved on, that any attempt, that in short concealment, if
- concealment be possible, is all that remains."
- These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal of his love for
- her sister, affected her very much. She was not immediately able to
- say anything, and even when her spirits were recovered, she debated for
- a short time, on the answer it would be most proper to give. The real
- state of things between Willoughby and her sister was so little known
- to herself, that in endeavouring to explain it, she might be as liable
- to say too much as too little. Yet as she was convinced that
- Marianne's affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
- Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection might be, and
- at the same time wished to shield her conduct from censure, she thought
- it most prudent and kind, after some consideration, to say more than
- she really knew or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
- she had never been informed by themselves of the terms on which they
- stood with each other, of their mutual affection she had no doubt, and
- of their correspondence she was not astonished to hear.
- He listened to her with silent attention, and on her ceasing to speak,
- rose directly from his seat, and after saying in a voice of emotion,
- "to your sister I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
- may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
- Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this conversation, to
- lessen the uneasiness of her mind on other points; she was left, on the
- contrary, with a melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's
- unhappiness, and was prevented even from wishing it removed, by her
- anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
- CHAPTER 28
- Nothing occurred during the next three or four days, to make Elinor
- regret what she had done, in applying to her mother; for Willoughby
- neither came nor wrote. They were engaged about the end of that time
- to attend Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was kept
- away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter; and for this party,
- Marianne, wholly dispirited, careless of her appearance, and seeming
- equally indifferent whether she went or staid, prepared, without one
- look of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
- drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady Middleton's
- arrival, without once stirring from her seat, or altering her attitude,
- lost in her own thoughts, and insensible of her sister's presence; and
- when at last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them at the
- door, she started as if she had forgotten that any one was expected.
- They arrived in due time at the place of destination, and as soon as
- the string of carriages before them would allow, alighted, ascended the
- stairs, heard their names announced from one landing-place to another
- in an audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up, quite full
- of company, and insufferably hot. When they had paid their tribute of
- politeness by curtsying to the lady of the house, they were permitted
- to mingle in the crowd, and take their share of the heat and
- inconvenience, to which their arrival must necessarily add. After some
- time spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat down to
- Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for moving about, she and
- Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs, placed themselves at no great
- distance from the table.
- They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor perceived
- Willoughby, standing within a few yards of them, in earnest
- conversation with a very fashionable looking young woman. She soon
- caught his eye, and he immediately bowed, but without attempting to
- speak to her, or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
- and then continued his discourse with the same lady. Elinor turned
- involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether it could be unobserved by
- her. At that moment she first perceived him, and her whole countenance
- glowing with sudden delight, she would have moved towards him
- instantly, had not her sister caught hold of her.
- "Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he is there--Oh! why does
- he not look at me? why cannot I speak to him?"
- "Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do not betray what you
- feel to every body present. Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
- This however was more than she could believe herself; and to be
- composed at such a moment was not only beyond the reach of Marianne, it
- was beyond her wish. She sat in an agony of impatience which affected
- every feature.
- At last he turned round again, and regarded them both; she started up,
- and pronouncing his name in a tone of affection, held out her hand to
- him. He approached, and addressing himself rather to Elinor than
- Marianne, as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to observe
- her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after Mrs. Dashwood, and
- asked how long they had been in town. Elinor was robbed of all
- presence of mind by such an address, and was unable to say a word. But
- the feelings of her sister were instantly expressed. Her face was
- crimsoned over, and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
- "Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this? Have you not
- received my letters? Will you not shake hands with me?"
- He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed painful to him, and he
- held her hand only for a moment. During all this time he was evidently
- struggling for composure. Elinor watched his countenance and saw its
- expression becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
- with calmness.
- "I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley Street last Tuesday,
- and very much regretted that I was not fortunate enough to find
- yourselves and Mrs. Jennings at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
- "But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne in the wildest
- anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am sure--some dreadful mistake. What
- can be the meaning of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell
- me, what is the matter?"
- He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his embarrassment
- returned; but as if, on catching the eye of the young lady with whom he
- had been previously talking, he felt the necessity of instant exertion,
- he recovered himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
- of receiving the information of your arrival in town, which you were so
- good as to send me," turned hastily away with a slight bow and joined
- his friend.
- Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable to stand, sunk into
- her chair, and Elinor, expecting every moment to see her faint, tried
- to screen her from the observation of others, while reviving her with
- lavender water.
- "Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she could speak, "and force
- him to come to me. Tell him I must see him again--must speak to him
- instantly.-- I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
- is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.-- Oh go to him
- this moment."
- "How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne, you must wait. This is
- not the place for explanations. Wait only till tomorrow."
- With difficulty however could she prevent her from following him
- herself; and to persuade her to check her agitation, to wait, at least,
- with the appearance of composure, till she might speak to him with more
- privacy and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
- incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery of her feelings,
- by exclamations of wretchedness. In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby
- quit the room by the door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne
- that he was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again that
- evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm. She instantly begged
- her sister would entreat Lady Middleton to take them home, as she was
- too miserable to stay a minute longer.
- Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber, on being informed
- that Marianne was unwell, was too polite to object for a moment to her
- wish of going away, and making over her cards to a friend, they
- departed as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word was
- spoken during their return to Berkeley Street. Marianne was in a
- silent agony, too much oppressed even for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings
- was luckily not come home, they could go directly to their own room,
- where hartshorn restored her a little to herself. She was soon
- undressed and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone, her
- sister then left her, and while she waited the return of Mrs. Jennings,
- had leisure enough for thinking over the past.
- That some kind of engagement had subsisted between Willoughby and
- Marianne she could not doubt, and that Willoughby was weary of it,
- seemed equally clear; for however Marianne might still feed her own
- wishes, SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake or
- misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough change of
- sentiment could account for it. Her indignation would have been still
- stronger than it was, had she not witnessed that embarrassment which
- seemed to speak a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
- her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been sporting with
- the affections of her sister from the first, without any design that
- would bear investigation. Absence might have weakened his regard, and
- convenience might have determined him to overcome it, but that such a
- regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself to doubt.
- As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting must already
- have given her, and on those still more severe which might await her in
- its probable consequence, she could not reflect without the deepest
- concern. Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
- could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be divided in
- future, her mind might be always supported. But every circumstance
- that could embitter such an evil seemed uniting to heighten the misery
- of Marianne in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate and
- irreconcilable rupture with him.
- CHAPTER 29
- Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day, or the sun
- gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning in January, Marianne, only
- half dressed, was kneeling against one of the window-seats for the sake
- of all the little light she could command from it, and writing as fast
- as a continual flow of tears would permit her. In this situation,
- Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation and sobs, first perceived
- her; and after observing her for a few moments with silent anxiety,
- said, in a tone of the most considerate gentleness,
- "Marianne, may I ask-?"
- "No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will soon know all."
- The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said, lasted no
- longer than while she spoke, and was immediately followed by a return
- of the same excessive affliction. It was some minutes before she could
- go on with her letter, and the frequent bursts of grief which still
- obliged her, at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of
- her feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing for the
- last time to Willoughby.
- Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention in her power; and
- she would have tried to sooth and tranquilize her still more, had not
- Marianne entreated her, with all the eagerness of the most nervous
- irritability, not to speak to her for the world. In such
- circumstances, it was better for both that they should not be long
- together; and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
- her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed, but
- requiring at once solitude and continual change of place, made her
- wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding the sight of every
- body.
- At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat any thing; and
- Elinor's attention was then all employed, not in urging her, not in
- pitying her, nor in appearing to regard her, but in endeavouring to
- engage Mrs. Jennings's notice entirely to herself.
- As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings, it lasted a
- considerable time, and they were just setting themselves, after it,
- round the common working table, when a letter was delivered to
- Marianne, which she eagerly caught from the servant, and, turning of a
- death-like paleness, instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as
- plainly by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must come
- from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness at heart as made her
- hardly able to hold up her head, and sat in such a general tremour as
- made her fear it impossible to escape Mrs. Jennings's notice. That good
- lady, however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter from
- Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke, and which she
- treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh, that she would find it to
- her liking. Of Elinor's distress, she was too busily employed in
- measuring lengths of worsted for her rug, to see any thing at all; and
- calmly continuing her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
- "Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so desperately in love in my
- life! MY girls were nothing to her, and yet they used to be foolish
- enough; but as for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature. I
- hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her waiting much
- longer, for it is quite grievous to see her look so ill and forlorn.
- Pray, when are they to be married?"
- Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at that moment,
- obliged herself to answer such an attack as this, and, therefore,
- trying to smile, replied, "And have you really, Ma'am, talked yourself
- into a persuasion of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I
- thought it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems to
- imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not deceive
- yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing would surprise me
- more than to hear of their being going to be married."
- "For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you talk so? Don't we
- all know that it must be a match, that they were over head and ears in
- love with each other from the first moment they met? Did not I see
- them together in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
- know that your sister came to town with me on purpose to buy wedding
- clothes? Come, come, this won't do. Because you are so sly about it
- yourself, you think nobody else has any senses; but it is no such
- thing, I can tell you, for it has been known all over town this ever so
- long. I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
- "Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously, "you are mistaken.
- Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing in spreading the report, and
- you will find that you have though you will not believe me now."
- Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not spirits to say more,
- and eager at all events to know what Willoughby had written, hurried
- away to their room, where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne
- stretched on the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
- and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near, but without
- saying a word; and seating herself on the bed, took her hand, kissed
- her affectionately several times, and then gave way to a burst of
- tears, which at first was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The
- latter, though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness of
- this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in joint affliction, she
- put all the letters into Elinor's hands; and then covering her face
- with her handkerchief, almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew
- that such grief, shocking as it was to witness it, must have its
- course, watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat spent
- itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter, read as
- follows:
- "Bond Street, January.
- "MY DEAR MADAM,
- "I have just had the honour of receiving your
- letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
- acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
- was anything in my behaviour last night that did
- not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
- a loss to discover in what point I could be so
- unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
- forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
- perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
- my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
- without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
- myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
- misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
- whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
- unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
- I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
- for not having been more guarded in my professions
- of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
- you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
- that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
- and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
- this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
- regret that I obey your commands in returning the
- letters with which I have been honoured from you,
- and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
- on me.
- "I am, dear Madam,
- "Your most obedient
- "humble servant,
- "JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
- With what indignation such a letter as this must be read by Miss
- Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware, before she began it, that it
- must bring a confession of his inconstancy, and confirm their
- separation for ever, she was not aware that such language could be
- suffered to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby capable
- of departing so far from the appearance of every honourable and
- delicate feeling--so far from the common decorum of a gentleman, as to
- send a letter so impudently cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing
- with his desire of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
- breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--a letter of
- which every line was an insult, and which proclaimed its writer to be
- deep in hardened villainy.
- She paused over it for some time with indignant astonishment; then read
- it again and again; but every perusal only served to increase her
- abhorrence of the man, and so bitter were her feelings against him,
- that she dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
- Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement, not as a loss to
- her of any possible good but as an escape from the worst and most
- irremediable of all evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled
- man, as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
- In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter, on the
- depravity of that mind which could dictate it, and probably, on the
- very different mind of a very different person, who had no other
- connection whatever with the affair than what her heart gave him with
- every thing that passed, Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her
- sister, forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread, and so
- entirely forgot how long she had been in the room, that when on hearing
- a carriage drive up to the door, she went to the window to see who
- could be coming so unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to
- perceive Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been ordered
- till one. Determined not to quit Marianne, though hopeless of
- contributing, at present, to her ease, she hurried away to excuse
- herself from attending Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being
- indisposed. Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern for
- its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor, after seeing
- her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she found attempting to rise
- from the bed, and whom she reached just in time to prevent her from
- falling on the floor, faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest
- and food; for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
- nights since she had really slept; and now, when her mind was no longer
- supported by the fever of suspense, the consequence of all this was
- felt in an aching head, a weakened stomach, and a general nervous
- faintness. A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
- made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express some
- sense of her kindness, by saying,
- "Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
- "I only wish," replied her sister, "there were any thing I COULD do,
- which might be of comfort to you."
- This, as every thing else would have been, was too much for Marianne,
- who could only exclaim, in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am
- miserable, indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
- Elinor could no longer witness this torrent of unresisted grief in
- silence.
- "Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried, "if you would not kill
- yourself and all who love you. Think of your mother; think of her
- misery while YOU suffer: for her sake you must exert yourself."
- "I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me, leave me, if I
- distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me! but do not torture me so.
- Oh! how easy for those, who have no sorrow of their own to talk of
- exertion! Happy, happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I
- suffer."
- "Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And can you believe
- me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
- "Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round her sister's neck; "I
- know you feel for me; I know what a heart you have; but yet you
- are--you must be happy; Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away
- such happiness as that?"
- "Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
- "No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you, and only you. You
- CAN have no grief."
- "I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
- "And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is a misery which nothing
- can do away."
- "You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no comforts? no friends? Is
- your loss such as leaves no opening for consolation? Much as you
- suffer now, think of what you would have suffered if the discovery of
- his character had been delayed to a later period--if your engagement
- had been carried on for months and months, as it might have been,
- before he chose to put an end to it. Every additional day of unhappy
- confidence, on your side, would have made the blow more dreadful."
- "Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been no engagement."
- "No engagement!"
- "No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him. He has broken no faith
- with me."
- "But he told you that he loved you."
- "Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied, but never
- professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it had been--but it never
- was."
- "Yet you wrote to him?"--
- "Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?-- But I cannot
- talk."
- Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three letters which now
- raised a much stronger curiosity than before, directly ran over the
- contents of all. The first, which was what her sister had sent him on
- their arrival in town, was to this effect.
- Berkeley Street, January.
- "How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
- receiving this; and I think you will feel something
- more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
- An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
- Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
- I wish you may receive this in time to come here
- to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
- I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
- "M.D."
- Her second note, which had been written on the morning after the dance
- at the Middletons', was in these words:--
- "I cannot express my disappointment in having
- missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
- at not having received any answer to a note which
- I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
- to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
- hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
- and explain the reason of my having expected this
- in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
- because we are generally out by one. We were last
- night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
- I have been told that you were asked to be of the
- party. But could it be so? You must be very much
- altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
- the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
- this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
- personal assurance of its being otherwise.
- "M.D."
- The contents of her last note to him were these:--
- "What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
- behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
- of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
- which our separation naturally produced, with the
- familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
- to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
- passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
- a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
- insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
- form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
- I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
- it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
- deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
- lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
- explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
- be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
- would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
- of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
- you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
- your regard for us all was insincere, that your
- behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
- it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
- present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
- to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
- ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
- no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
- and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
- "M.D."
- That such letters, so full of affection and confidence, could have been
- so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake, would have been unwilling
- to believe. But her condemnation of him did not blind her to the
- impropriety of their having been written at all; and she was silently
- grieving over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited proofs
- of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding, and most severely
- condemned by the event, when Marianne, perceiving that she had finished
- the letters, observed to her that they contained nothing but what any
- one would have written in the same situation.
- "I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly engaged to him, as if
- the strictest legal covenant had bound us to each other."
- "I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately he did not feel the
- same."
- "He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he felt it. I know
- he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and nothing but the
- blackest art employed against me can have done it), I was once as dear
- to him as my own soul could wish. This lock of hair, which now he can
- so readily give up, was begged of me with the most earnest
- supplication. Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his
- voice at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our being
- together at Barton? The morning that we parted too! When he told me
- that it might be many weeks before we met again--his distress--can I
- ever forget his distress?"
- For a moment or two she could say no more; but when this emotion had
- passed away, she added, in a firmer tone,
- "Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
- "Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he have been
- instigated?"
- "By all the world, rather than by his own heart. I could rather
- believe every creature of my acquaintance leagued together to ruin me
- in his opinion, than believe his nature capable of such cruelty. This
- woman of whom he writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your
- own dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous to bely me.
- Beyond you three, is there a creature in the world whom I would not
- rather suspect of evil than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
- Elinor would not contend, and only replied, "Whoever may have been so
- detestably your enemy, let them be cheated of their malignant triumph,
- my dear sister, by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
- innocence and good intentions supports your spirits. It is a
- reasonable and laudable pride which resists such malevolence."
- "No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has no pride. I care
- not who knows that I am wretched. The triumph of seeing me so may be
- open to all the world. Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be
- proud and independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
- mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be wretched--and they
- are welcome to enjoy the consciousness of it that can."
- "But for my mother's sake and mine--"
- "I would do more than for my own. But to appear happy when I am so
- miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
- Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed in walking
- thoughtfully from the fire to the window, from the window to the fire,
- without knowing that she received warmth from one, or discerning
- objects through the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
- with her head leaning against one of its posts, again took up
- Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering over every sentence,
- exclaimed--
- "It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this be yours!
- Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor, nothing can. Whatever
- he might have heard against me--ought he not to have suspended his
- belief? ought he not to have told me of it, to have given me the power
- of clearing myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
- which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
- Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words? Oh,
- barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
- "No, Marianne, in no possible way."
- "And yet this woman--who knows what her art may have been?--how long it
- may have been premeditated, and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is
- she?--Who can she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
- attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one, no one--he
- talked to me only of myself."
- Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated, and it ended thus.
- "Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama. Can not we be
- gone to-morrow?"
- "To-morrow, Marianne!"
- "Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for Willoughby's sake--and
- now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
- "It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe Mrs. Jennings much more
- than civility; and civility of the commonest kind must prevent such a
- hasty removal as that."
- "Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot stay here long, I
- cannot stay to endure the questions and remarks of all these people.
- The Middletons and Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of
- such a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
- Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a moment she did so; but
- no attitude could give her ease; and in restless pain of mind and body
- she moved from one posture to another, till growing more and more
- hysterical, her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at
- all, and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call for
- assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she was at length
- persuaded to take, were of use; and from that time till Mrs. Jennings
- returned, she continued on the bed quiet and motionless.
- CHAPTER 30
- Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return, and without
- waiting to have her request of admittance answered, opened the door and
- walked in with a look of real concern.
- "How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great compassion to
- Marianne, who turned away her face without attempting to answer.
- "How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.-- No
- wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married very soon--a
- good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience with him. Mrs. Taylor
- told me of it half an hour ago, and she was told it by a particular
- friend of Miss Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed
- it; and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I, all I can
- say is, that if this be true, he has used a young lady of my
- acquaintance abominably ill, and I wish with all my soul his wife may
- plague his heart out. And so I shall always say, my dear, you may
- depend on it. I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if
- ever I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he has not
- had this many a day. But there is one comfort, my dear Miss Marianne;
- he is not the only young man in the world worth having; and with your
- pretty face you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
- disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry out at once and
- have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons luckily are coming tonight
- you know, and that will amuse her."
- She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room, as if she
- supposed her young friend's affliction could be increased by noise.
- Marianne, to the surprise of her sister, determined on dining with
- them. Elinor even advised her against it. But "no, she would go down;
- she could bear it very well, and the bustle about her would be less."
- Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a moment by such a motive,
- though believing it hardly possible that she could sit out the dinner,
- said no more; and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
- while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready to assist her into
- the dining room as soon as they were summoned to it.
- When there, though looking most wretchedly, she ate more and was calmer
- than her sister had expected. Had she tried to speak, or had she been
- conscious of half Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
- to her, this calmness could not have been maintained; but not a
- syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction of her thoughts
- preserved her in ignorance of every thing that was passing before her.
- Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness, though its
- effusions were often distressing, and sometimes almost ridiculous, made
- her those acknowledgments, and returned her those civilities, which her
- sister could not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
- that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing was due to her
- which might make her at all less so. She treated her therefore, with
- all the indulgent fondness of a parent towards a favourite child on the
- last day of its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the
- fire, was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house, and to
- be amused by the relation of all the news of the day. Had not Elinor,
- in the sad countenance of her sister, seen a check to all mirth, she
- could have been entertained by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a
- disappointment in love, by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a
- good fire. As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
- forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could stay no longer.
- With a hasty exclamation of Misery, and a sign to her sister not to
- follow her, she directly got up and hurried out of the room.
- "Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone, "how it
- grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is not gone away without
- finishing her wine! And the dried cherries too! Lord! nothing seems
- to do her any good. I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I
- would send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest thing to
- me, that a man should use such a pretty girl so ill! But when there is
- plenty of money on one side, and next to none on the other, Lord bless
- you! they care no more about such things!--"
- "The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--is very rich?"
- "Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see her? a smart,
- stylish girl they say, but not handsome. I remember her aunt very
- well, Biddy Henshawe; she married a very wealthy man. But the family
- are all rich together. Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it
- won't come before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces. No
- wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters! Well, it don't
- signify talking; but when a young man, be who he will, comes and makes
- love to a pretty girl, and promises marriage, he has no business to fly
- off from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer girl is
- ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case, sell his horses, let
- his house, turn off his servants, and make a thorough reform at once? I
- warrant you, Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
- came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the way of
- pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of this age."
- "Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is? Is she said to be
- amiable?"
- "I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever heard her
- mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say this morning, that one day
- Miss Walker hinted to her, that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would
- not be sorry to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
- never agree."--
- "And who are the Ellisons?"
- "Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age and may choose for
- herself; and a pretty choice she has made!--What now," after pausing a
- moment--"your poor sister is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan
- by herself. Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
- it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we shall
- have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little. What shall we
- play at? She hates whist I know; but is there no round game she cares
- for?"
- "Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary. Marianne, I dare say,
- will not leave her room again this evening. I shall persuade her if I
- can to go early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
- "Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name her own
- supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has been looking so bad and
- so cast down this last week or two, for this matter I suppose has been
- hanging over her head as long as that. And so the letter that came
- today finished it! Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
- I would not have joked her about it for all my money. But then you
- know, how should I guess such a thing? I made sure of its being
- nothing but a common love letter, and you know young people like to be
- laughed at about them. Lord! how concerned Sir John and my daughters
- will be when they hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have
- called in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it. But I
- shall see them tomorrow."
- "It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution Mrs. Palmer and
- Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby, or making the slightest
- allusion to what has passed, before my sister. Their own good-nature
- must point out to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
- about it when she is present; and the less that may ever be said to
- myself on the subject, the more my feelings will be spared, as you my
- dear madam will easily believe."
- "Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible for you to hear
- it talked of; and as for your sister, I am sure I would not mention a
- word about it to her for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
- No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are all very
- thoughtful and considerate; especially if I give them a hint, as I
- certainly will. For my part, I think the less that is said about such
- things, the better, the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what
- does talking ever do you know?"
- "In this affair it can only do harm; more so perhaps than in many cases
- of a similar kind, for it has been attended by circumstances which, for
- the sake of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become the
- public conversation. I must do THIS justice to Mr. Willoughby--he has
- broken no positive engagement with my sister."
- "Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him. No positive engagement
- indeed! after taking her all over Allenham House, and fixing on the
- very rooms they were to live in hereafter!"
- Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the subject farther, and
- she hoped it was not required of her for Willoughby's; since, though
- Marianne might lose much, he could gain very little by the enforcement
- of the real truth. After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
- with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
- "Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind, for it will be
- all the better for Colonel Brandon. He will have her at last; aye,
- that he will. Mind me, now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord!
- how he'll chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight. It
- will be all to one a better match for your sister. Two thousand a year
- without debt or drawback--except the little love-child, indeed; aye, I
- had forgot her; but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
- what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can tell you;
- exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place, full of comforts and
- conveniences; quite shut in with great garden walls that are covered
- with the best fruit-trees in the country; and such a mulberry tree in
- one corner! Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we were
- there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful stew-ponds, and a
- very pretty canal; and every thing, in short, that one could wish for;
- and, moreover, it is close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile
- from the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only go and sit
- up in an old yew arbour behind the house, you may see all the carriages
- that pass along. Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the
- village, and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw. To my fancy,
- a thousand times prettier than Barton Park, where they are forced to
- send three miles for their meat, and have not a neighbour nearer than
- your mother. Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
- One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down. If we CAN but
- put Willoughby out of her head!"
- "Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor, "we shall do very well
- with or without Colonel Brandon." And then rising, she went away to
- join Marianne, whom she found, as she expected, in her own room,
- leaning, in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire, which,
- till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
- "You had better leave me," was all the notice that her sister received
- from her.
- "I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go to bed." But this,
- from the momentary perverseness of impatient suffering, she at first
- refused to do. Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion,
- however, soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her lay her
- aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped, in a way to get some quiet
- rest before she left her.
- In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired, she was soon joined by
- Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass, full of something, in her hand.
- "My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected that I have
- some of the finest old Constantia wine in the house that ever was
- tasted, so I have brought a glass of it for your sister. My poor
- husband! how fond he was of it! Whenever he had a touch of his old
- colicky gout, he said it did him more good than any thing else in the
- world. Do take it to your sister."
- "Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference of the
- complaints for which it was recommended, "how good you are! But I have
- just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope, almost asleep; and as I think
- nothing will be of so much service to her as rest, if you will give me
- leave, I will drink the wine myself."
- Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been five minutes
- earlier, was satisfied with the compromise; and Elinor, as she
- swallowed the chief of it, reflected, that though its effects on a
- colicky gout were, at present, of little importance to her, its healing
- powers, on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried on herself
- as on her sister.
- Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea, and by his manner
- of looking round the room for Marianne, Elinor immediately fancied that
- he neither expected nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
- was already aware of what occasioned her absence. Mrs. Jennings was
- not struck by the same thought; for soon after his entrance, she walked
- across the room to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
- "The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows nothing of it;
- do tell him, my dear."
- He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to hers, and, with a look
- which perfectly assured her of his good information, inquired after her
- sister.
- "Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been indisposed all day,
- and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
- "Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I heard this morning
- may be--there may be more truth in it than I could believe possible at
- first."
- "What did you hear?"
- "That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short, that a man,
- whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I tell you? If you know it
- already, as surely you must, I may be spared."
- "You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness, "Mr. Willoughby's
- marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO know it all. This seems to have
- been a day of general elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded
- it to us. Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
- "In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I had business. Two ladies
- were waiting for their carriage, and one of them was giving the other
- an account of the intended match, in a voice so little attempting
- concealment, that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
- of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated, first caught my
- attention; and what followed was a positive assertion that every thing
- was now finally settled respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was
- no longer to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
- with many particulars of preparations and other matters. One thing,
- especially, I remember, because it served to identify the man still
- more:--as soon as the ceremony was over, they were to go to Combe
- Magna, his seat in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
- impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative lady I learnt,
- on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop till they were gone, was a Mrs.
- Ellison, and that, as I have been since informed, is the name of Miss
- Grey's guardian."
- "It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey has fifty thousand
- pounds? In that, if in any thing, we may find an explanation."
- "It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least I think"--he stopped
- a moment; then added in a voice which seemed to distrust itself, "And
- your sister--how did she--"
- "Her sufferings have been very severe. I have only to hope that they
- may be proportionately short. It has been, it is a most cruel
- affliction. Till yesterday, I believe, she never doubted his regard;
- and even now, perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
- really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and, in some
- points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
- "Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But your sister does
- not--I think you said so--she does not consider quite as you do?"
- "You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly she would still
- justify him if she could."
- He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal of the
- tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties, the subject was
- necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had watched them with pleasure
- while they were talking, and who expected to see the effect of Miss
- Dashwood's communication, in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel
- Brandon's side, as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of
- hope and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole evening
- more serious and thoughtful than usual.
- CHAPTER 31
- From a night of more sleep than she had expected, Marianne awoke the
- next morning to the same consciousness of misery in which she had
- closed her eyes.
- Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk of what she felt; and
- before breakfast was ready, they had gone through the subject again and
- again; and with the same steady conviction and affectionate counsel on
- Elinor's side, the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
- Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe Willoughby to be as
- unfortunate and as innocent as herself, and at others, lost every
- consolation in the impossibility of acquitting him. At one moment she
- was absolutely indifferent to the observation of all the world, at
- another she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
- could resist it with energy. In one thing, however, she was uniform,
- when it came to the point, in avoiding, where it was possible, the
- presence of Mrs. Jennings, and in a determined silence when obliged to
- endure it. Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs.
- Jennings's entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
- "No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried; "she cannot feel. Her kindness
- is not sympathy; her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
- is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
- Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice to which her
- sister was often led in her opinion of others, by the irritable
- refinement of her own mind, and the too great importance placed by her
- on the delicacies of a strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished
- manner. Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there be
- that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent abilities and an
- excellent disposition, was neither reasonable nor candid. She expected
- from other people the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she
- judged of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions on
- herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the sisters were together
- in their own room after breakfast, which sunk the heart of Mrs.
- Jennings still lower in her estimation; because, through her own
- weakness, it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself, though
- Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse of the utmost goodwill.
- With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance gaily smiling,
- from the persuasion of bringing comfort, she entered their room, saying,
- "Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure will do you good."
- Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination placed before her
- a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness and contrition,
- explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory, convincing; and
- instantly followed by Willoughby himself, rushing eagerly into the room
- to inforce, at her feet, by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances
- of his letter. The work of one moment was destroyed by the next. The
- hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome, was before her;
- and, in the acuteness of the disappointment which followed such an
- ecstasy of more than hope, she felt as if, till that instant, she had
- never suffered.
- The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within her reach in her
- moments of happiest eloquence, could have expressed; and now she could
- reproach her only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
- passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely lost on its
- object, that after many expressions of pity, she withdrew, still
- referring her to the letter of comfort. But the letter, when she was
- calm enough to read it, brought little comfort. Willoughby filled
- every page. Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and
- relying as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused by
- Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater openness towards
- them both; and this, with such tenderness towards her, such affection
- for Willoughby, and such a conviction of their future happiness in each
- other, that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
- All her impatience to be at home again now returned; her mother was
- dearer to her than ever; dearer through the very excess of her mistaken
- confidence in Willoughby, and she was wildly urgent to be gone.
- Elinor, unable herself to determine whether it were better for Marianne
- to be in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own except of
- patience till their mother's wishes could be known; and at length she
- obtained her sister's consent to wait for that knowledge.
- Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she could not be easy
- till the Middletons and Palmers were able to grieve as much as herself;
- and positively refusing Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for
- the rest of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of the
- pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving, by Marianne's
- letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying any foundation for it, then
- sat down to write her mother an account of what had passed, and entreat
- her directions for the future; while Marianne, who came into the
- drawing-room on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
- where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen, grieving over
- her for the hardship of such a task, and grieving still more fondly
- over its effect on her mother.
- In this manner they had continued about a quarter of an hour, when
- Marianne, whose nerves could not then bear any sudden noise, was
- startled by a rap at the door.
- "Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I thought we HAD been
- safe."
- Marianne moved to the window--
- "It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation. "We are never safe
- from HIM."
- "He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
- "I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room. "A man who has
- nothing to do with his own time has no conscience in his intrusion on
- that of others."
- The event proved her conjecture right, though it was founded on
- injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon DID come in; and Elinor, who
- was convinced that solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who
- saw THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look, and in his
- anxious though brief inquiry after her, could not forgive her sister
- for esteeming him so lightly.
- "I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he, after the first
- salutation, "and she encouraged me to come on; and I was the more
- easily encouraged, because I thought it probable that I might find you
- alone, which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my wish--my sole
- wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe it is--is to be a means of
- giving comfort;--no, I must not say comfort--not present comfort--but
- conviction, lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for
- her, for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it, by
- relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY sincere
- regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being useful--I think I am
- justified--though where so many hours have been spent in convincing
- myself that I am right, is there not some reason to fear I may be
- wrong?" He stopped.
- "I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something to tell me of Mr.
- Willoughby, that will open his character farther. Your telling it will
- be the greatest act of friendship that can be shewn Marianne. MY
- gratitude will be insured immediately by any information tending to
- that end, and HERS must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me
- hear it."
- "You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton last October,--but
- this will give you no idea--I must go farther back. You will find me a
- very awkward narrator, Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A
- short account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it SHALL be
- a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily, "can I have little
- temptation to be diffuse."
- He stopt a moment for recollection, and then, with another sigh, went
- on.
- "You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--(it is not to be
- supposed that it could make any impression on you)--a conversation
- between us one evening at Barton Park--it was the evening of a
- dance--in which I alluded to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in
- some measure, your sister Marianne."
- "Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it." He looked pleased
- by this remembrance, and added,
- "If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality of tender
- recollection, there is a very strong resemblance between them, as well
- in mind as person. The same warmth of heart, the same eagerness of
- fancy and spirits. This lady was one of my nearest relations, an
- orphan from her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father. Our
- ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years we were
- playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the time when I did not
- love Eliza; and my affection for her, as we grew up, was such, as
- perhaps, judging from my present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you
- might think me incapable of having ever felt. Hers, for me, was, I
- believe, fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby and
- it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate. At
- seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was married--married
- against her inclination to my brother. Her fortune was large, and our
- family estate much encumbered. And this, I fear, is all that can be
- said for the conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
- My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her. I had hoped
- that her regard for me would support her under any difficulty, and for
- some time it did; but at last the misery of her situation, for she
- experienced great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
- she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I relate! I have
- never told you how this was brought on. We were within a few hours of
- eloping together for Scotland. The treachery, or the folly, of my
- cousin's maid betrayed us. I was banished to the house of a relation
- far distant, and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
- till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her fortitude too
- far, and the blow was a severe one--but had her marriage been happy, so
- young as I then was, a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at
- least I should not have now to lament it. This however was not the
- case. My brother had no regard for her; his pleasures were not what
- they ought to have been, and from the first he treated her unkindly.
- The consequence of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so
- inexperienced as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
- herself at first to all the misery of her situation; and happy had it
- been if she had not lived to overcome those regrets which the
- remembrance of me occasioned. But can we wonder that, with such a
- husband to provoke inconstancy, and without a friend to advise or
- restrain her (for my father lived only a few months after their
- marriage, and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she should
- fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I meant to promote the
- happiness of both by removing from her for years, and for that purpose
- had procured my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
- he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of trifling
- weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard, about two years
- afterwards, of her divorce. It was THAT which threw this gloom,--even
- now the recollection of what I suffered--"
- He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few minutes about
- the room. Elinor, affected by his relation, and still more by his
- distress, could not speak. He saw her concern, and coming to her, took
- her hand, pressed it, and kissed it with grateful respect. A few
- minutes more of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
- "It was nearly three years after this unhappy period before I returned
- to England. My first care, when I DID arrive, was of course to seek
- for her; but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy. I could
- not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there was every reason to
- fear that she had removed from him only to sink deeper in a life of
- sin. Her legal allowance was not adequate to her fortune, nor
- sufficient for her comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my
- brother that the power of receiving it had been made over some months
- before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he imagine it,
- that her extravagance, and consequent distress, had obliged her to
- dispose of it for some immediate relief. At last, however, and after I
- had been six months in England, I DID find her. Regard for a former
- servant of my own, who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to
- visit him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt; and
- there, in the same house, under a similar confinement, was my unfortunate
- sister. So altered--so faded--worn down by acute suffering of every
- kind! hardly could I believe the melancholy and sickly figure before
- me, to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl, on whom
- I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding her--but I have no
- right to wound your feelings by attempting to describe it--I have
- pained you too much already. That she was, to all appearance, in the
- last stage of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was my
- greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her, beyond giving time
- for a better preparation for death; and that was given. I saw her
- placed in comfortable lodgings, and under proper attendants; I visited
- her every day during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
- last moments."
- Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor spoke her feelings in
- an exclamation of tender concern, at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
- "Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he, "by the resemblance
- I have fancied between her and my poor disgraced relation. Their
- fates, their fortunes, cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
- disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind, or a happier
- marriage, she might have been all that you will live to see the other
- be. But to what does all this lead? I seem to have been distressing
- you for nothing. Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
- for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all! I WILL be
- more collected--more concise. She left to my care her only child, a
- little girl, the offspring of her first guilty connection, who was then
- about three years old. She loved the child, and had always kept it
- with her. It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly would I
- have discharged it in the strictest sense, by watching over her
- education myself, had the nature of our situations allowed it; but I
- had no family, no home; and my little Eliza was therefore placed at
- school. I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
- brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which left to me the
- possession of the family property,) she visited me at Delaford. I
- called her a distant relation; but I am well aware that I have in
- general been suspected of a much nearer connection with her. It is now
- three years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,) that I
- removed her from school, to place her under the care of a very
- respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire, who had the charge of four
- or five other girls of about the same time of life; and for two years I
- had every reason to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
- almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared. I had allowed
- her, (imprudently, as it has since turned out,) at her earnest desire,
- to go to Bath with one of her young friends, who was attending her
- father there for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
- and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved, for, with
- a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy, she would tell nothing, would
- give no clue, though she certainly knew all. He, her father, a
- well-meaning, but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
- give no information; for he had been generally confined to the house,
- while the girls were ranging over the town and making what acquaintance
- they chose; and he tried to convince me, as thoroughly as he was
- convinced himself, of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the
- business. In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone; all
- the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture. What I
- thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I suffered too."
- "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could Willoughby!"--
- "The first news that reached me of her," he continued, "came in a
- letter from herself, last October. It was forwarded to me from
- Delaford, and I received it on the very morning of our intended party
- to Whitwell; and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
- which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange to every body,
- and which I believe gave offence to some. Little did Mr. Willoughby
- imagine, I suppose, when his looks censured me for incivility in
- breaking up the party, that I was called away to the relief of one whom
- he had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it, what would it have
- availed? Would he have been less gay or less happy in the smiles of
- your sister? No, he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
- for another would do. He had left the girl whose youth and innocence
- he had seduced, in a situation of the utmost distress, with no
- creditable home, no help, no friends, ignorant of his address! He had
- left her, promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote, nor
- relieved her."
- "This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
- "His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated, and worse than
- both. Knowing all this, as I have now known it many weeks, guess what
- I must have felt on seeing your sister as fond of him as ever, and on
- being assured that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
- for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and found you alone,
- I came determined to know the truth; though irresolute what to do when
- it WAS known. My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then; but
- now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be so deceived; to
- see your sister--but what could I do? I had no hope of interfering
- with success; and sometimes I thought your sister's influence might yet
- reclaim him. But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
- were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been, however, she may
- now, and hereafter doubtless WILL turn with gratitude towards her own
- condition, when she compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she
- considers the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl, and
- pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong, still as
- strong as her own, and with a mind tormented by self-reproach, which
- must attend her through life. Surely this comparison must have its use
- with her. She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
- proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace. On the
- contrary, every friend must be made still more her friend by them.
- Concern for her unhappiness, and respect for her fortitude under it,
- must strengthen every attachment. Use your own discretion, however, in
- communicating to her what I have told you. You must know best what
- will be its effect; but had I not seriously, and from my heart believed
- it might be of service, might lessen her regrets, I would not have
- suffered myself to trouble you with this account of my family
- afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been intended to
- raise myself at the expense of others."
- Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful earnestness;
- attended too with the assurance of her expecting material advantage to
- Marianne, from the communication of what had passed.
- "I have been more pained," said she, "by her endeavors to acquit him
- than by all the rest; for it irritates her mind more than the most
- perfect conviction of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first
- she will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier. Have
- you," she continued, after a short silence, "ever seen Mr. Willoughby
- since you left him at Barton?"
- "Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting was unavoidable."
- Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously, saying,
- "What? have you met him to--"
- "I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed to me, though most
- reluctantly, the name of her lover; and when he returned to town, which
- was within a fortnight after myself, we met by appointment, he to
- defend, I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded, and the
- meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
- Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this; but to a man and a
- soldier she presumed not to censure it.
- "Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause, "has been the unhappy
- resemblance between the fate of mother and daughter! and so imperfectly
- have I discharged my trust!"
- "Is she still in town?"
- "No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in, for I found her near
- her delivery, I removed her and her child into the country, and there
- she remains."
- Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably dividing Elinor
- from her sister, he put an end to his visit, receiving from her again
- the same grateful acknowledgments, and leaving her full of compassion
- and esteem for him.
- CHAPTER 32
- When the particulars of this conversation were repeated by Miss
- Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were, the effect on her was
- not entirely such as the former had hoped to see. Not that Marianne
- appeared to distrust the truth of any part of it, for she listened to
- it all with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
- objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby, and
- seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to be impossible. But
- though this behaviour assured Elinor that the conviction of this guilt
- WAS carried home to her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the
- effect of it, in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
- in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking, with a kind of
- compassionate respect, and though she saw her spirits less violently
- irritated than before, she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did
- become settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection. She felt the
- loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily than she had felt the
- loss of his heart; his seduction and desertion of Miss Williams, the
- misery of that poor girl, and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE
- have been on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits, that
- she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt even to Elinor;
- and, brooding over her sorrows in silence, gave more pain to her sister
- than could have been communicated by the most open and most frequent
- confession of them.
- To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood on receiving and
- answering Elinor's letter would be only to give a repetition of what
- her daughters had already felt and said; of a disappointment hardly
- less painful than Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than
- Elinor's. Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
- arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought; to express her
- anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat she would bear up with
- fortitude under this misfortune. Bad indeed must the nature of
- Marianne's affliction be, when her mother could talk of fortitude!
- mortifying and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets, which
- SHE could wish her not to indulge!
- Against the interest of her own individual comfort, Mrs. Dashwood had
- determined that it would be better for Marianne to be any where, at
- that time, than at Barton, where every thing within her view would be
- bringing back the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner, by
- constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as she had always seen
- him there. She recommended it to her daughters, therefore, by all
- means not to shorten their visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which,
- though never exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at
- least five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects, and of
- company, which could not be procured at Barton, would be inevitable
- there, and might yet, she hoped, cheat Marianne, at times, into some
- interest beyond herself, and even into some amusement, much as the
- ideas of both might now be spurned by her.
- From all danger of seeing Willoughby again, her mother considered her
- to be at least equally safe in town as in the country, since his
- acquaintance must now be dropped by all who called themselves her
- friends. Design could never bring them in each other's way: negligence
- could never leave them exposed to a surprise; and chance had less in
- its favour in the crowd of London than even in the retirement of
- Barton, where it might force him before her while paying that visit at
- Allenham on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at first
- as a probable event, had brought herself to expect as a certain one.
- She had yet another reason for wishing her children to remain where
- they were; a letter from her son-in-law had told her that he and his
- wife were to be in town before the middle of February, and she judged
- it right that they should sometimes see their brother.
- Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion, and she
- submitted to it therefore without opposition, though it proved
- perfectly different from what she wished and expected, though she felt
- it to be entirely wrong, formed on mistaken grounds, and that by
- requiring her longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
- possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal sympathy of her
- mother, and doomed her to such society and such scenes as must prevent
- her ever knowing a moment's rest.
- But it was a matter of great consolation to her, that what brought evil
- to herself would bring good to her sister; and Elinor, on the other
- hand, suspecting that it would not be in her power to avoid Edward
- entirely, comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer stay
- would therefore militate against her own happiness, it would be better
- for Marianne than an immediate return into Devonshire.
- Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever hearing Willoughby's
- name mentioned, was not thrown away. Marianne, though without knowing
- it herself, reaped all its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor
- Sir John, nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
- Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended towards
- herself, but that was impossible, and she was obliged to listen day
- after day to the indignation of them all.
- Sir John, could not have thought it possible. "A man of whom he had
- always had such reason to think well! Such a good-natured fellow! He
- did not believe there was a bolder rider in England! It was an
- unaccountable business. He wished him at the devil with all his heart.
- He would not speak another word to him, meet him where he might, for
- all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side of Barton covert,
- and they were kept watching for two hours together. Such a scoundrel
- of a fellow! such a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
- that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this was the end of
- it!"
- Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry. "She was determined to
- drop his acquaintance immediately, and she was very thankful that she
- had never been acquainted with him at all. She wished with all her
- heart Combe Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
- for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated him so much
- that she was resolved never to mention his name again, and she should
- tell everybody she saw, how good-for-nothing he was."
- The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring all the
- particulars in her power of the approaching marriage, and communicating
- them to Elinor. She could soon tell at what coachmaker's the new
- carriage was building, by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was
- drawn, and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
- The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton on the occasion was a
- happy relief to Elinor's spirits, oppressed as they often were by the
- clamorous kindness of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be
- sure of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their circle
- of friends: a great comfort to know that there was ONE who would meet
- her without feeling any curiosity after particulars, or any anxiety for
- her sister's health.
- Every qualification is raised at times, by the circumstances of the
- moment, to more than its real value; and she was sometimes worried down
- by officious condolence to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to
- comfort than good-nature.
- Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair about once every day,
- or twice, if the subject occurred very often, by saying, "It is very
- shocking, indeed!" and by the means of this continual though gentle
- vent, was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the first
- without the smallest emotion, but very soon to see them without
- recollecting a word of the matter; and having thus supported the
- dignity of her own sex, and spoken her decided censure of what was
- wrong in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend to the
- interest of her own assemblies, and therefore determined (though rather
- against the opinion of Sir John) that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once
- be a woman of elegance and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon
- as she married.
- Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries were never unwelcome
- to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly earned the privilege of intimate
- discussion of her sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
- which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always conversed with
- confidence. His chief reward for the painful exertion of disclosing
- past sorrows and present humiliations, was given in the pitying eye
- with which Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness of her
- voice whenever (though it did not often happen) she was obliged, or
- could oblige herself to speak to him. THESE assured him that his
- exertion had produced an increase of good-will towards himself, and
- THESE gave Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter; but
- Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew only that the
- Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that she could neither prevail
- on him to make the offer himself, nor commission her to make it for
- him, began, at the end of two days, to think that, instead of
- Midsummer, they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the end of
- a week that it would not be a match at all. The good understanding
- between the Colonel and Miss Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the
- honours of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour, would all
- be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had, for some time ceased to
- think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
- Early in February, within a fortnight from the receipt of Willoughby's
- letter, Elinor had the painful office of informing her sister that he
- was married. She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed to
- herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony was over, as she was
- desirous that Marianne should not receive the first notice of it from
- the public papers, which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
- She received the news with resolute composure; made no observation on
- it, and at first shed no tears; but after a short time they would burst
- out, and for the rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less
- pitiable than when she first learnt to expect the event.
- The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married; and Elinor now
- hoped, as there could be no danger of her seeing either of them, to
- prevail on her sister, who had never yet left the house since the blow
- first fell, to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
- About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived at their cousin's
- house in Bartlett's Buildings, Holburn, presented themselves again
- before their more grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets; and
- were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
- Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence always gave her
- pain, and she hardly knew how to make a very gracious return to the
- overpowering delight of Lucy in finding her STILL in town.
- "I should have been quite disappointed if I had not found you here
- STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong emphasis on the word. "But
- I always thought I SHOULD. I was almost sure you would not leave
- London yet awhile; though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you
- should not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time, that you
- would most likely change your mind when it came to the point. It would
- have been such a great pity to have went away before your brother and
- sister came. And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone. I
- am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
- Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced to use all her
- self-command to make it appear that she did NOT.
- "Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did you travel?"
- "Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele, with quick
- exultation; "we came post all the way, and had a very smart beau to
- attend us. Dr. Davies was coming to town, and so we thought we'd join
- him in a post-chaise; and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or
- twelve shillings more than we did."
- "Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty, indeed! and the Doctor is
- a single man, I warrant you."
- "There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering, "everybody laughs
- at me so about the Doctor, and I cannot think why. My cousins say they
- are sure I have made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never
- think about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here comes your
- beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day, when she saw him crossing the
- street to the house. My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you
- mean. The Doctor is no beau of mine."
- "Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--the Doctor is
- the man, I see."
- "No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness, "and I beg
- you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
- Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying assurance that she
- certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele was made completely happy.
- "I suppose you will go and stay with your brother and sister, Miss
- Dashwood, when they come to town," said Lucy, returning, after a
- cessation of hostile hints, to the charge.
- "No, I do not think we shall."
- "Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
- Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
- "What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can spare you both for
- so long a time together!"
- "Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings. "Why, their visit is
- but just begun!"
- Lucy was silenced.
- "I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood," said Miss
- Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--" for Marianne had left the room
- on their arrival.
- "You are very good. My sister will be equally sorry to miss the
- pleasure of seeing you; but she has been very much plagued lately with
- nervous head-aches, which make her unfit for company or conversation."
- "Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old friends as Lucy and
- me!--I think she might see US; and I am sure we would not speak a word."
- Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal. Her sister was
- perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her dressing gown, and therefore
- not able to come to them.
- "Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can just as well go and see
- HER."
- Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for her temper; but she
- was saved the trouble of checking it, by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which
- now, as on many occasions, though it did not give much sweetness to the
- manners of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of the other.
- CHAPTER 33
- After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her sister's entreaties, and
- consented to go out with her and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an
- hour. She expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits, and
- would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in Sackville Street,
- where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation for the exchange of a few
- old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
- When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected that there was
- a lady at the other end of the street on whom she ought to call; and as
- she had no business at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young
- friends transacted their's, she should pay her visit and return for
- them.
- On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found so many people before
- them in the room, that there was not a person at liberty to tend to
- their orders; and they were obliged to wait. All that could be done
- was, to sit down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
- quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there, and it is
- probable that Elinor was not without hope of exciting his politeness to
- a quicker despatch. But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
- of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness. He was giving orders
- for a toothpick-case for himself, and till its size, shape, and
- ornaments were determined, all of which, after examining and debating
- for a quarter of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop, were
- finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had no leisure to
- bestow any other attention on the two ladies, than what was comprised
- in three or four very broad stares; a kind of notice which served to
- imprint on Elinor the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
- natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in the first style of
- fashion.
- Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings of contempt and
- resentment, on this impertinent examination of their features, and on
- the puppyism of his manner in deciding on all the different horrors of
- the different toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
- unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect her thoughts
- within herself, and be as ignorant of what was passing around her, in
- Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
- At last the affair was decided. The ivory, the gold, and the pearls,
- all received their appointment, and the gentleman having named the last
- day on which his existence could be continued without the possession of
- the toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care, and
- bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such a one as
- seemed rather to demand than express admiration, walked off with a
- happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
- Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward, was on the point
- of concluding it, when another gentleman presented himself at her side.
- She turned her eyes towards his face, and found him with some surprise
- to be her brother.
- Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough to make a very
- creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop. John Dashwood was really far
- from being sorry to see his sisters again; it rather gave them
- satisfaction; and his inquiries after their mother were respectful and
- attentive.
- Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town two days.
- "I wished very much to call upon you yesterday," said he, "but it was
- impossible, for we were obliged to take Harry to see the wild beasts at
- Exeter Exchange; and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
- Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended to call on
- you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour, but one has always so
- much to do on first coming to town. I am come here to bespeak Fanny a
- seal. But tomorrow I think I shall certainly be able to call in
- Berkeley Street, and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings. I
- understand she is a woman of very good fortune. And the Middletons
- too, you must introduce me to THEM. As my mother-in-law's relations, I
- shall be happy to show them every respect. They are excellent
- neighbours to you in the country, I understand."
- "Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort, their friendliness
- in every particular, is more than I can express."
- "I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word; extremely glad indeed.
- But so it ought to be; they are people of large fortune, they are
- related to you, and every civility and accommodation that can serve to
- make your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected. And so you
- are most comfortably settled in your little cottage and want for
- nothing! Edward brought us a most charming account of the place: the
- most complete thing of its kind, he said, that ever was, and you all
- seemed to enjoy it beyond any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us
- to hear it, I assure you."
- Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother; and was not sorry to
- be spared the necessity of answering him, by the arrival of Mrs.
- Jennings's servant, who came to tell her that his mistress waited for
- them at the door.
- Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced to Mrs. Jennings
- at the door of her carriage, and repeating his hope of being able to
- call on them the next day, took leave.
- His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at an apology from
- their sister-in-law, for not coming too; "but she was so much engaged
- with her mother, that really she had no leisure for going any where."
- Mrs. Jennings, however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
- upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something like it, and she
- should certainly wait on Mrs. John Dashwood very soon, and bring her
- sisters to see her. His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly
- kind; to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
- Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a curiosity
- which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know him to be rich, to be
- equally civil to HIM.
- After staying with them half an hour, he asked Elinor to walk with him
- to Conduit Street, and introduce him to Sir John and Lady Middleton.
- The weather was remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon as
- they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
- "Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
- "Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
- "I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man; and I think,
- Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect of a very respectable
- establishment in life."
- "Me, brother! what do you mean?"
- "He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am convinced of it. What
- is the amount of his fortune?"
- "I believe about two thousand a year."
- "Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself up to a pitch of
- enthusiastic generosity, he added, "Elinor, I wish with all my heart it
- were TWICE as much, for your sake."
- "Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am very sure that
- Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish of marrying ME."
- "You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken. A very little
- trouble on your side secures him. Perhaps just at present he may be
- undecided; the smallness of your fortune may make him hang back; his
- friends may all advise him against it. But some of those little
- attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily give will fix
- him, in spite of himself. And there can be no reason why you should
- not try for him. It is not to be supposed that any prior attachment on
- your side--in short, you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is
- quite out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--you have
- too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon must be the man;
- and no civility shall be wanting on my part to make him pleased with
- you and your family. It is a match that must give universal
- satisfaction. In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his
- voice to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome to ALL
- PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added, "That is, I mean to
- say--your friends are all truly anxious to see you well settled; Fanny
- particularly, for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure
- you. And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman, I am
- sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much the other day."
- Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
- "It would be something remarkable, now," he continued, "something
- droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I a sister settling at the
- same time. And yet it is not very unlikely."
- "Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution, "going to be
- married?"
- "It is not actually settled, but there is such a thing in agitation.
- He has a most excellent mother. Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost
- liberality, will come forward, and settle on him a thousand a year, if
- the match takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
- of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds. A very desirable
- connection on both sides, and I have not a doubt of its taking place in
- time. A thousand a-year is a great deal for a mother to give away, to
- make over for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give you
- another instance of her liberality:--The other day, as soon as we came
- to town, aware that money could not be very plenty with us just now,
- she put bank-notes into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred
- pounds. And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
- expense while we are here."
- He paused for her assent and compassion; and she forced herself to say,
- "Your expenses both in town and country must certainly be considerable;
- but your income is a large one."
- "Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose. I do not mean to
- complain, however; it is undoubtedly a comfortable one, and I hope will
- in time be better. The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
- is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little purchase within
- this half year; East Kingham Farm, you must remember the place, where
- old Gibson used to live. The land was so very desirable for me in
- every respect, so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
- my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my conscience to
- let it fall into any other hands. A man must pay for his convenience;
- and it HAS cost me a vast deal of money."
- "More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
- "Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again, the next day, for
- more than I gave: but, with regard to the purchase-money, I might have
- been very unfortunate indeed; for the stocks were at that time so low,
- that if I had not happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's
- hands, I must have sold out to very great loss."
- Elinor could only smile.
- "Other great and inevitable expenses too we have had on first coming to
- Norland. Our respected father, as you well know, bequeathed all the
- Stanhill effects that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
- to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his doing so; he had an
- undoubted right to dispose of his own property as he chose, but, in
- consequence of it, we have been obliged to make large purchases of
- linen, china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away. You may
- guess, after all these expenses, how very far we must be from being
- rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's kindness is."
- "Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality, I hope you
- may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
- "Another year or two may do much towards it," he gravely replied; "but
- however there is still a great deal to be done. There is not a stone
- laid of Fanny's green-house, and nothing but the plan of the
- flower-garden marked out."
- "Where is the green-house to be?"
- "Upon the knoll behind the house. The old walnut trees are all come
- down to make room for it. It will be a very fine object from many
- parts of the park, and the flower-garden will slope down just before
- it, and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old thorns
- that grew in patches over the brow."
- Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself; and was very
- thankful that Marianne was not present, to share the provocation.
- Having now said enough to make his poverty clear, and to do away the
- necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings for each of his sisters, in his
- next visit at Gray's his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began
- to congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
- "She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house, her style of
- living, all bespeak an exceeding good income; and it is an acquaintance
- that has not only been of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may
- prove materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is certainly a
- vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it speaks altogether so great a
- regard for you, that in all probability when she dies you will not be
- forgotten.-- She must have a great deal to leave."
- "Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has only her
- jointure, which will descend to her children."
- "But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to her income. Few
- people of common prudence will do THAT; and whatever she saves, she
- will be able to dispose of."
- "And do you not think it more likely that she should leave it to her
- daughters, than to us?"
- "Her daughters are both exceedingly well married, and therefore I
- cannot perceive the necessity of her remembering them farther.
- Whereas, in my opinion, by her taking so much notice of you, and
- treating you in this kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on
- her future consideration, which a conscientious woman would not
- disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour; and she can
- hardly do all this, without being aware of the expectation it raises."
- "But she raises none in those most concerned. Indeed, brother, your
- anxiety for our welfare and prosperity carries you too far."
- "Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself, "people have
- little, have very little in their power. But, my dear Elinor, what is
- the matter with Marianne?-- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour,
- and is grown quite thin. Is she ill?"
- "She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint on her for several
- weeks."
- "I am sorry for that. At her time of life, any thing of an illness
- destroys the bloom for ever! Hers has been a very short one! She was
- as handsome a girl last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to
- attract the man. There was something in her style of beauty, to please
- them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say that she would marry
- sooner and better than you did; not but what she is exceedingly fond of
- YOU, but so it happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
- I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth more than five
- or six hundred a-year, at the utmost, and I am very much deceived if
- YOU do not do better. Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire;
- but, my dear Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
- and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself among the
- earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
- Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that there was no
- likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon; but it was an expectation
- of too much pleasure to himself to be relinquished, and he was really
- resolved on seeking an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the
- marriage by every possible attention. He had just compunction enough
- for having done nothing for his sisters himself, to be exceedingly
- anxious that everybody else should do a great deal; and an offer from
- Colonel Brandon, or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
- of atoning for his own neglect.
- They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton at home, and Sir John
- came in before their visit ended. Abundance of civilities passed on
- all sides. Sir John was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood
- did not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him down as a very
- good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton saw enough of fashion in his
- appearance to think his acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood
- went away delighted with both.
- "I shall have a charming account to carry to Fanny," said he, as he
- walked back with his sister. "Lady Middleton is really a most elegant
- woman! Such a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know. And Mrs.
- Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman, though not so elegant
- as her daughter. Your sister need not have any scruple even of
- visiting HER, which, to say the truth, has been a little the case, and
- very naturally; for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a
- man who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and Mrs. Ferrars
- were both strongly prepossessed, that neither she nor her daughters
- were such kind of women as Fanny would like to associate with. But now
- I can carry her a most satisfactory account of both."
- CHAPTER 34
- Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her husband's judgment,
- that she waited the very next day both on Mrs. Jennings and her
- daughter; and her confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
- even the woman with whom her sisters were staying, by no means unworthy
- her notice; and as for Lady Middleton, she found her one of the most
- charming women in the world!
- Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood. There was a
- kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides, which mutually
- attracted them; and they sympathised with each other in an insipid
- propriety of demeanor, and a general want of understanding.
- The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John Dashwood to the
- good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit the fancy of Mrs. Jennings,
- and to HER she appeared nothing more than a little proud-looking woman
- of uncordial address, who met her husband's sisters without any
- affection, and almost without having anything to say to them; for of
- the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street, she sat at least
- seven minutes and a half in silence.
- Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did not chuse to ask,
- whether Edward was then in town; but nothing would have induced Fanny
- voluntarily to mention his name before her, till able to tell her that
- his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on, or till her husband's
- expectations on Colonel Brandon were answered; because she believed
- them still so very much attached to each other, that they could not be
- too sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion. The
- intelligence however, which SHE would not give, soon flowed from
- another quarter. Lucy came very shortly to claim Elinor's compassion
- on being unable to see Edward, though he had arrived in town with Mr.
- and Mrs. Dashwood. He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
- of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet, was not to be
- told, they could do nothing at present but write.
- Edward assured them himself of his being in town, within a very short
- time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street. Twice was his card found on
- the table, when they returned from their morning's engagements. Elinor
- was pleased that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
- missed him.
- The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted with the Middletons, that,
- though not much in the habit of giving anything, they determined to
- give them--a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began, invited
- them to dine in Harley Street, where they had taken a very good house
- for three months. Their sisters and Mrs. Jennings were invited
- likewise, and John Dashwood was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who,
- always glad to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
- civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure. They were to
- meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn whether her sons were to
- be of the party. The expectation of seeing HER, however, was enough to
- make her interested in the engagement; for though she could now meet
- Edward's mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised to
- attend such an introduction, though she could now see her with perfect
- indifference as to her opinion of herself, her desire of being in
- company with Mrs. Ferrars, her curiosity to know what she was like, was
- as lively as ever.
- The interest with which she thus anticipated the party, was soon
- afterwards increased, more powerfully than pleasantly, by her hearing
- that the Miss Steeles were also to be at it.
- So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton, so agreeable
- had their assiduities made them to her, that though Lucy was certainly
- not so elegant, and her sister not even genteel, she was as ready as
- Sir John to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street; and it
- happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss Steeles, as soon as
- the Dashwoods' invitation was known, that their visit should begin a
- few days before the party took place.
- Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood, as the nieces of the
- gentleman who for many years had had the care of her brother, might not
- have done much, however, towards procuring them seats at her table; but
- as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy, who had long
- wanted to be personally known to the family, to have a nearer view of
- their characters and her own difficulties, and to have an opportunity
- of endeavouring to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
- than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
- On Elinor its effect was very different. She began immediately to
- determine, that Edward who lived with his mother, must be asked as his
- mother was, to a party given by his sister; and to see him for the
- first time, after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
- knew how she could bear it!
- These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded entirely on reason, and
- certainly not at all on truth. They were relieved however, not by her
- own recollection, but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to
- be inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her that Edward
- certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday, and even hoped to
- be carrying the pain still farther by persuading her that he was kept
- away by the extreme affection for herself, which he could not conceal
- when they were together.
- The important Tuesday came that was to introduce the two young ladies
- to this formidable mother-in-law.
- "Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they walked up the stairs
- together--for the Middletons arrived so directly after Mrs. Jennings,
- that they all followed the servant at the same time--"There is nobody
- here but you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
- Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all my
- happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
- Elinor could have given her immediate relief by suggesting the
- possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother, rather than her own,
- whom they were about to behold; but instead of doing that, she assured
- her, and with great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
- amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself, hoped at
- least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
- Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright, even to formality, in
- her figure, and serious, even to sourness, in her aspect. Her
- complexion was sallow; and her features small, without beauty, and
- naturally without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow had
- rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity, by giving it
- the strong characters of pride and ill nature. She was not a woman of
- many words; for, unlike people in general, she proportioned them to the
- number of her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her, not
- one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed with the spirited
- determination of disliking her at all events.
- Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.-- A few months
- ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it was not in Mrs. Ferrars'
- power to distress her by it now;--and the difference of her manners to
- the Miss Steeles, a difference which seemed purposely made to humble
- her more, only amused her. She could not but smile to see the
- graciousness of both mother and daughter towards the very person-- for
- Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others, had they known
- as much as she did, they would have been most anxious to mortify; while
- she herself, who had comparatively no power to wound them, sat
- pointedly slighted by both. But while she smiled at a graciousness so
- misapplied, she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from which
- it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions with which the Miss
- Steeles courted its continuance, without thoroughly despising them all
- four.
- Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably distinguished; and Miss
- Steele wanted only to be teazed about Dr. Davies to be perfectly happy.
- The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous, and every thing
- bespoke the Mistress's inclination for show, and the Master's ability
- to support it. In spite of the improvements and additions which were
- making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner having once
- been within some thousand pounds of being obliged to sell out at a
- loss, nothing gave any symptom of that indigence which he had tried to
- infer from it;--no poverty of any kind, except of conversation,
- appeared--but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
- had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing, and his wife
- had still less. But there was no peculiar disgrace in this; for it was
- very much the case with the chief of their visitors, who almost all
- laboured under one or other of these disqualifications for being
- agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want of
- elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
- When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room after dinner, this poverty
- was particularly evident, for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse
- with some variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land, and
- breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one subject only engaged
- the ladies till coffee came in, which was the comparative heights of
- Harry Dashwood, and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were
- nearly of the same age.
- Had both the children been there, the affair might have been determined
- too easily by measuring them at once; but as Harry only was present, it
- was all conjectural assertion on both sides; and every body had a right
- to be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it over and over
- again as often as they liked.
- The parties stood thus:
- The two mothers, though each really convinced that her own son was the
- tallest, politely decided in favour of the other.
- The two grandmothers, with not less partiality, but more sincerity,
- were equally earnest in support of their own descendant.
- Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent than the other,
- thought the boys were both remarkably tall for their age, and could not
- conceive that there could be the smallest difference in the world
- between them; and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it, as
- fast as she could, in favour of each.
- Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on William's side, by which
- she offended Mrs. Ferrars and Fanny still more, did not see the
- necessity of enforcing it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when
- called on for hers, offended them all, by declaring that she had no
- opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
- Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted a very pretty pair
- of screens for her sister-in-law, which being now just mounted and
- brought home, ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
- catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following the other gentlemen
- into the room, were officiously handed by him to Colonel Brandon for
- his admiration.
- "These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you, as a man of
- taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them. I do not know whether
- you have ever happened to see any of her performances before, but she
- is in general reckoned to draw extremely well."
- The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions to connoisseurship,
- warmly admired the screens, as he would have done any thing painted by
- Miss Dashwood; and on the curiosity of the others being of course
- excited, they were handed round for general inspection. Mrs. Ferrars,
- not aware of their being Elinor's work, particularly requested to look
- at them; and after they had received gratifying testimony of Lady
- Middletons's approbation, Fanny presented them to her mother,
- considerately informing her, at the same time, that they were done by
- Miss Dashwood.
- "Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without regarding them at
- all, returned them to her daughter.
- Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother had been quite rude
- enough,--for, colouring a little, she immediately said,
- "They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again, the dread of
- having been too civil, too encouraging herself, probably came over her,
- for she presently added,
- "Do you not think they are something in Miss Morton's style of
- painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most delightfully!--How beautifully
- her last landscape is done!"
- "Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
- Marianne could not bear this.--She was already greatly displeased with
- Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed praise of another, at Elinor's
- expense, though she had not any notion of what was principally meant by
- it, provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
- "This is admiration of a very particular kind!--what is Miss Morton to
- us?--who knows, or who cares, for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think
- and speak."
- And so saying, she took the screens out of her sister-in-law's hands,
- to admire them herself as they ought to be admired.
- Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing herself up more
- stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort this bitter philippic, "Miss
- Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
- Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was all in a fright at his
- sister's audacity. Elinor was much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than
- she had been by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
- were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only what was amiable
- in it, the affectionate heart which could not bear to see a sister
- slighted in the smallest point.
- Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold insolence of Mrs.
- Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister, seemed, to her, to foretell
- such difficulties and distresses to Elinor, as her own wounded heart
- taught her to think of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
- affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment, to her sister's
- chair, and putting one arm round her neck, and one cheek close to hers,
- said in a low, but eager, voice,
- "Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them make YOU unhappy."
- She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome, and hiding her
- face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst into tears. Every body's
- attention was called, and almost every body was concerned.--Colonel
- Brandon rose up and went to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs.
- Jennings, with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave her
- her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged against the author
- of this nervous distress, that he instantly changed his seat to one
- close by Lucy Steele, and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of
- the whole shocking affair.
- In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered enough to put an end
- to the bustle, and sit down among the rest; though her spirits retained
- the impression of what had passed, the whole evening.
- "Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon, in a low voice,
- as soon as he could secure his attention,-- "She has not such good
- health as her sister,--she is very nervous,--she has not Elinor's
- constitution;--and one must allow that there is something very trying
- to a young woman who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal
- attractions. You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS
- remarkably handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
- Now you see it is all gone."
- CHAPTER 35
- Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.-- She had found
- in her every thing that could tend to make a farther connection between
- the families undesirable.-- She had seen enough of her pride, her
- meanness, and her determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend
- all the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement, and
- retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been otherwise
- free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful for her OWN sake,
- that one greater obstacle preserved her from suffering under any other
- of Mrs. Ferrars's creation, preserved her from all dependence upon her
- caprice, or any solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she
- did not bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered to
- Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable, she OUGHT to
- have rejoiced.
- She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much elevated by the
- civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest and her vanity should so
- very much blind her as to make the attention which seemed only paid her
- because she was NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
- her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her, because
- her real situation was unknown. But that it was so, had not only been
- declared by Lucy's eyes at the time, but was declared over again the
- next morning more openly, for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton
- set her down in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
- to tell her how happy she was.
- The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from Mrs. Palmer soon
- after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
- "My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were by themselves, "I
- come to talk to you of my happiness. Could anything be so flattering
- as Mrs. Ferrars's way of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable
- as she was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--but
- the very moment I was introduced, there was such an affability in her
- behaviour as really should seem to say, she had quite took a fancy to
- me. Now was not it so?-- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck
- with it?"
- "She was certainly very civil to you."
- "Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?-- I saw a vast deal
- more. Such kindness as fell to the share of nobody but me!--No pride,
- no hauteur, and your sister just the same--all sweetness and
- affability!"
- Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still pressed her to
- own that she had reason for her happiness; and Elinor was obliged to go
- on.--
- "Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement," said she, "nothing
- could be more flattering than their treatment of you;--but as that was
- not the case"--
- "I guessed you would say so,"--replied Lucy quickly--"but there was no
- reason in the world why Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did
- not, and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me out of my
- satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well, and there will be no
- difficulties at all, to what I used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a
- charming woman, and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
- indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable Mrs.
- Dashwood was!"
- To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not attempt any.
- "Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you don't speak;--sure you
- an't well."
- "I never was in better health."
- "I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did not look it. I
- should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have been the greatest
- comfort to me in the world!--Heaven knows what I should have done
- without your friendship."--
- Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting her own success.
- But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she directly replied,
- "Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard for me, and next to
- Edward's love, it is the greatest comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But
- now there is one good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty
- often, for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood, so we shall
- be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say, and Edward spends half his
- time with his sister--besides, Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will
- visit now;--and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
- more than once, they should always be glad to see me.-- They are such
- charming women!--I am sure if ever you tell your sister what I think of
- her, you cannot speak too high."
- But Elinor would not give her any encouragement to hope that she SHOULD
- tell her sister. Lucy continued.
- "I am sure I should have seen it in a moment, if Mrs. Ferrars had took
- a dislike to me. If she had only made me a formal courtesy, for
- instance, without saying a word, and never after had took any notice of
- me, and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know what I mean--if
- I had been treated in that forbidding sort of way, I should have gave
- it all up in despair. I could not have stood it. For where she DOES
- dislike, I know it is most violent."
- Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this civil triumph, by
- the door's being thrown open, the servant's announcing Mr. Ferrars, and
- Edward's immediately walking in.
- It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each shewed that
- it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish; and Edward seemed to
- have as great an inclination to walk out of the room again, as to
- advance farther into it. The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest
- form, which they would each have been most anxious to avoid, had fallen
- on them.--They were not only all three together, but were together
- without the relief of any other person. The ladies recovered
- themselves first. It was not Lucy's business to put herself forward,
- and the appearance of secrecy must still be kept up. She could
- therefore only LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
- said no more.
- But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she, for his sake and her
- own, to do it well, that she forced herself, after a moment's
- recollection, to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost
- easy, and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
- improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy, nor the
- consciousness of some injustice towards herself, to deter her from
- saying that she was happy to see him, and that she had very much
- regretted being from home, when he called before in Berkeley Street.
- She would not be frightened from paying him those attentions which, as
- a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the observant eyes of
- Lucy, though she soon perceived them to be narrowly watching her.
- Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he had courage enough
- to sit down; but his embarrassment still exceeded that of the ladies in
- a proportion, which the case rendered reasonable, though his sex might
- make it rare; for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
- could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
- Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined to make no
- contribution to the comfort of the others, and would not say a word;
- and almost every thing that WAS said, proceeded from Elinor, who was
- obliged to volunteer all the information about her mother's health,
- their coming to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
- but never did.
- Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon afterwards felt herself
- so heroically disposed as to determine, under pretence of fetching
- Marianne, to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it, and
- THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away several minutes on
- the landing-place, with the most high-minded fortitude, before she went
- to her sister. When that was once done, however, it was time for the
- raptures of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into the
- drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him was like every
- other of her feelings, strong in itself, and strongly spoken. She met
- him with a hand that would be taken, and a voice that expressed the
- affection of a sister.
- "Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great happiness!--This
- would almost make amends for every thing!"
- Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved, but before such
- witnesses he dared not say half what he really felt. Again they all
- sat down, and for a moment or two all were silent; while Marianne was
- looking with the most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and
- sometimes at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each other
- should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence. Edward was the first
- to speak, and it was to notice Marianne's altered looks, and express
- his fear of her not finding London agree with her.
- "Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited earnestness, though
- her eyes were filled with tears as she spoke, "don't think of MY
- health. Elinor is well, you see. That must be enough for us both."
- This remark was not calculated to make Edward or Elinor more easy, nor
- to conciliate the good will of Lucy, who looked up at Marianne with no
- very benignant expression.
- "Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say any thing that might
- introduce another subject.
- "Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it, but I have found none.
- The sight of you, Edward, is the only comfort it has afforded; and
- thank Heaven! you are what you always were!"
- She paused--no one spoke.
- "I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must employ Edward to take
- care of us in our return to Barton. In a week or two, I suppose, we
- shall be going; and, I trust, Edward will not be very unwilling to
- accept the charge."
- Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was, nobody knew, not even
- himself. But Marianne, who saw his agitation, and could easily trace
- it to whatever cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied, and
- soon talked of something else.
- "We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street yesterday! So dull, so
- wretchedly dull!--But I have much to say to you on that head, which
- cannot be said now."
- And with this admirable discretion did she defer the assurance of her
- finding their mutual relatives more disagreeable than ever, and of her
- being particularly disgusted with his mother, till they were more in
- private.
- "But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you not come?"
- "I was engaged elsewhere."
- "Engaged! But what was that, when such friends were to be met?"
- "Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take some revenge on
- her, "you think young men never stand upon engagements, if they have no
- mind to keep them, little as well as great."
- Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely insensible of the
- sting; for she calmly replied,
- "Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very sure that
- conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street. And I really believe
- he HAS the most delicate conscience in the world; the most scrupulous
- in performing every engagement, however minute, and however it may make
- against his interest or pleasure. He is the most fearful of giving
- pain, of wounding expectation, and the most incapable of being selfish,
- of any body I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it. What!
- are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you must be no friend of
- mine; for those who will accept of my love and esteem, must submit to
- my open commendation."
- The nature of her commendation, in the present case, however, happened
- to be particularly ill-suited to the feelings of two thirds of her
- auditors, and was so very unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon
- got up to go away.
- "Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward, this must not be."
- And drawing him a little aside, she whispered her persuasion that Lucy
- could not stay much longer. But even this encouragement failed, for he
- would go; and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
- two hours, soon afterwards went away.
- "What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne, on her leaving them.
- "Could not she see that we wanted her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
- "Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been the longest known
- to him of any. It is but natural that he should like to see her as
- well as ourselves."
- Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know, Elinor, that this
- is a kind of talking which I cannot bear. If you only hope to have
- your assertion contradicted, as I must suppose to be the case, you
- ought to recollect that I am the last person in the world to do it. I
- cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are not really
- wanted."
- She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow her to say more,
- for bound as she was by her promise of secrecy to Lucy, she could give
- no information that would convince Marianne; and painful as the
- consequences of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
- obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was that Edward
- would not often expose her or himself to the distress of hearing
- Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the repetition of any other part of
- the pain that had attended their recent meeting--and this she had every
- reason to expect.
- CHAPTER 36
- Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers announced to the
- world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer, Esq. was safely delivered of a
- son and heir; a very interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least
- to all those intimate connections who knew it before.
- This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness, produced a
- temporary alteration in the disposal of her time, and influenced, in a
- like degree, the engagements of her young friends; for as she wished to
- be as much as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning as
- soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late in the evening;
- and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular request of the Middletons,
- spent the whole of every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
- they would much rather have remained, at least all the morning, in Mrs.
- Jennings's house; but it was not a thing to be urged against the wishes
- of everybody. Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton and
- the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact was as little
- valued, as it was professedly sought.
- They had too much sense to be desirable companions to the former; and
- by the latter they were considered with a jealous eye, as intruding on
- THEIR ground, and sharing the kindness which they wanted to monopolize.
- Though nothing could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
- Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all. Because they
- neither flattered herself nor her children, she could not believe them
- good-natured; and because they were fond of reading, she fancied them
- satirical: perhaps without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
- but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use, and easily
- given.
- Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy. It checked the
- idleness of one, and the business of the other. Lady Middleton was
- ashamed of doing nothing before them, and the flattery which Lucy was
- proud to think of and administer at other times, she feared they would
- despise her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed of the
- three, by their presence; and it was in their power to reconcile her to
- it entirely. Would either of them only have given her a full and
- minute account of the whole affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby,
- she would have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice of the
- best place by the fire after dinner, which their arrival occasioned.
- But this conciliation was not granted; for though she often threw out
- expressions of pity for her sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt
- a reflection on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect was
- produced, but a look of indifference from the former, or of disgust in
- the latter. An effort even yet lighter might have made her their
- friend. Would they only have laughed at her about the Doctor! But so
- little were they, anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her, that
- if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole day without
- hearing any other raillery on the subject, than what she was kind
- enough to bestow on herself.
- All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so totally
- unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought it a delightful thing
- for the girls to be together; and generally congratulated her young
- friends every night, on having escaped the company of a stupid old
- woman so long. She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes at
- her own house; but wherever it was, she always came in excellent
- spirits, full of delight and importance, attributing Charlotte's well
- doing to her own care, and ready to give so exact, so minute a detail
- of her situation, as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
- One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her daily complaint.
- Mr. Palmer maintained the common, but unfatherly opinion among his sex,
- of all infants being alike; and though she could plainly perceive, at
- different times, the most striking resemblance between this baby and
- every one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing his
- father of it; no persuading him to believe that it was not exactly like
- every other baby of the same age; nor could he even be brought to
- acknowledge the simple proposition of its being the finest child in the
- world.
- I come now to the relation of a misfortune, which about this time
- befell Mrs. John Dashwood. It so happened that while her two sisters
- with Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street, another
- of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance in itself not
- apparently likely to produce evil to her. But while the imaginations
- of other people will carry them away to form wrong judgments of our
- conduct, and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
- must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance. In the present
- instance, this last-arrived lady allowed her fancy to so far outrun
- truth and probability, that on merely hearing the name of the Miss
- Dashwoods, and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters, she
- immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street; and this
- misconstruction produced within a day or two afterwards, cards of
- invitation for them as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
- musical party at her house. The consequence of which was, that Mrs.
- John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only to the exceedingly great
- inconvenience of sending her carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what
- was still worse, must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
- to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they might not
- expect to go out with her a second time? The power of disappointing
- them, it was true, must always be hers. But that was not enough; for
- when people are determined on a mode of conduct which they know to be
- wrong, they feel injured by the expectation of any thing better from
- them.
- Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much into the habit of
- going out every day, that it was become a matter of indifference to
- her, whether she went or not: and she prepared quietly and mechanically
- for every evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
- amusement from any, and very often without knowing, till the last
- moment, where it was to take her.
- To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly indifferent, as
- not to bestow half the consideration on it, during the whole of her
- toilet, which it received from Miss Steele in the first five minutes of
- their being together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
- observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing, and asked every
- thing; was never easy till she knew the price of every part of
- Marianne's dress; could have guessed the number of her gowns altogether
- with better judgment than Marianne herself, and was not without hopes
- of finding out before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
- and how much she had every year to spend upon herself. The
- impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover, was generally
- concluded with a compliment, which though meant as its douceur, was
- considered by Marianne as the greatest impertinence of all; for after
- undergoing an examination into the value and make of her gown, the
- colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair, she was almost
- sure of being told that upon "her word she looked vastly smart, and she
- dared to say she would make a great many conquests."
- With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed on the present
- occasion, to her brother's carriage; which they were ready to enter
- five minutes after it stopped at the door, a punctuality not very
- agreeable to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house of
- her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay on their part
- that might inconvenience either herself or her coachman.
- The events of this evening were not very remarkable. The party, like
- other musical parties, comprehended a great many people who had real
- taste for the performance, and a great many more who had none at all;
- and the performers themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
- and that of their immediate friends, the first private performers in
- England.
- As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so, she made no
- scruple of turning her eyes from the grand pianoforte, whenever it
- suited her, and unrestrained even by the presence of a harp, and
- violoncello, would fix them at pleasure on any other object in the
- room. In one of these excursive glances she perceived among a group of
- young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture on toothpick-cases
- at Gray's. She perceived him soon afterwards looking at herself, and
- speaking familiarly to her brother; and had just determined to find out
- his name from the latter, when they both came towards her, and Mr.
- Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
- He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted his head into a bow
- which assured her as plainly as words could have done, that he was
- exactly the coxcomb she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy
- had it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended less on his
- own merit, than on the merit of his nearest relations! For then his
- brother's bow must have given the finishing stroke to what the
- ill-humour of his mother and sister would have begun. But while she
- wondered at the difference of the two young men, she did not find that
- the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out of all charity with
- the modesty and worth of the other. Why they WERE different, Robert
- exclaimed to her himself in the course of a quarter of an hour's
- conversation; for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
- GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing in proper
- society, he candidly and generously attributed it much less to any
- natural deficiency, than to the misfortune of a private education;
- while he himself, though probably without any particular, any material
- superiority by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
- was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
- "Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more; and so I often
- tell my mother, when she is grieving about it. 'My dear Madam,' I
- always say to her, 'you must make yourself easy. The evil is now
- irremediable, and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would you
- be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your own judgment, to
- place Edward under private tuition, at the most critical time of his
- life? If you had only sent him to Westminster as well as myself,
- instead of sending him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been
- prevented.' This is the way in which I always consider the matter, and
- my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
- Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because, whatever might be her
- general estimation of the advantage of a public school, she could not
- think of Edward's abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
- "You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his next observation, "in a
- cottage near Dawlish."
- Elinor set him right as to its situation; and it seemed rather
- surprising to him that anybody could live in Devonshire, without living
- near Dawlish. He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
- species of house.
- "For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond of a cottage; there
- is always so much comfort, so much elegance about them. And I protest,
- if I had any money to spare, I should buy a little land and build one
- myself, within a short distance of London, where I might drive myself
- down at any time, and collect a few friends about me, and be happy. I
- advise every body who is going to build, to build a cottage. My friend
- Lord Courtland came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
- and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's. I was to decide
- on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,' said I, immediately throwing
- them all into the fire, 'do not adopt either of them, but by all means
- build a cottage.' And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
- "Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations, no space in a
- cottage; but this is all a mistake. I was last month at my friend
- Elliott's, near Dartford. Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But
- how can it be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it is
- to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage that will hold ten
- couple, and where can the supper be?' I immediately saw that there
- could be no difficulty in it, so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not
- be uneasy. The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
- card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library may be open
- for tea and other refreshments; and let the supper be set out in the
- saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted with the thought. We measured the
- dining-room, and found it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the
- affair was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact, you
- see, if people do but know how to set about it, every comfort may be as
- well enjoyed in a cottage as in the most spacious dwelling."
- Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think he deserved the
- compliment of rational opposition.
- As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his eldest sister,
- his mind was equally at liberty to fix on any thing else; and a thought
- struck him during the evening, which he communicated to his wife, for
- her approbation, when they got home. The consideration of Mrs.
- Dennison's mistake, in supposing his sisters their guests, had
- suggested the propriety of their being really invited to become such,
- while Mrs. Jennings's engagements kept her from home. The expense would
- be nothing, the inconvenience not more; and it was altogether an
- attention which the delicacy of his conscience pointed out to be
- requisite to its complete enfranchisement from his promise to his
- father. Fanny was startled at the proposal.
- "I do not see how it can be done," said she, "without affronting Lady
- Middleton, for they spend every day with her; otherwise I should be
- exceedingly glad to do it. You know I am always ready to pay them any
- attention in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews. But
- they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them away from her?"
- Her husband, but with great humility, did not see the force of her
- objection. "They had already spent a week in this manner in Conduit
- Street, and Lady Middleton could not be displeased at their giving the
- same number of days to such near relations."
- Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
- "My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it was in my power.
- But I had just settled within myself to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a
- few days with us. They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and
- I think the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very well
- by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year, you know; but the
- Miss Steeles may not be in town any more. I am sure you will like
- them; indeed, you DO like them, you know, very much already, and so
- does my mother; and they are such favourites with Harry!"
- Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity of inviting the Miss
- Steeles immediately, and his conscience was pacified by the resolution
- of inviting his sisters another year; at the same time, however, slyly
- suspecting that another year would make the invitation needless, by
- bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife, and Marianne as
- THEIR visitor.
- Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready wit that had
- procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy, to request her company and
- her sister's, for some days, in Harley Street, as soon as Lady
- Middleton could spare them. This was enough to make Lucy really and
- reasonably happy. Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her,
- herself; cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views! Such
- an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was, above all
- things, the most material to her interest, and such an invitation the
- most gratifying to her feelings! It was an advantage that could not be
- too gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of; and the
- visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had any precise limits,
- was instantly discovered to have been always meant to end in two days'
- time.
- When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten minutes after
- its arrival, it gave her, for the first time, some share in the
- expectations of Lucy; for such a mark of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed
- on so short an acquaintance, seemed to declare that the good-will
- towards her arose from something more than merely malice against
- herself; and might be brought, by time and address, to do every thing
- that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already subdued the pride of Lady
- Middleton, and made an entry into the close heart of Mrs. John
- Dashwood; and these were effects that laid open the probability of
- greater.
- The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all that reached Elinor
- of their influence there, strengthened her expectation of the event.
- Sir John, who called on them more than once, brought home such accounts
- of the favour they were in, as must be universally striking. Mrs.
- Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any young women in her
- life, as she was with them; had given each of them a needle book made
- by some emigrant; called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
- whether she should ever be able to part with them.
- [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume II ended.]
- CHAPTER 37
- Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight, that her mother felt
- it no longer necessary to give up the whole of her time to her; and,
- contenting herself with visiting her once or twice a day, returned from
- that period to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found the
- Miss Dashwoods very ready to resume their former share.
- About the third or fourth morning after their being thus resettled in
- Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings, on returning from her ordinary visit to
- Mrs. Palmer, entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting by
- herself, with an air of such hurrying importance as prepared her to
- hear something wonderful; and giving her time only to form that idea,
- began directly to justify it, by saying,
- "Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
- "No, ma'am. What is it?"
- "Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.-- When I got to Mr.
- Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite in a fuss about the child. She was
- sure it was very ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
- So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,' says I, 'it is
- nothing in the world, but the red gum--' and nurse said just the same.
- But Charlotte, she would not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for;
- and luckily he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
- stepped over directly, and as soon as ever Mama, he said
- just as we did, that it was nothing in the world but the red gum, and
- then Charlotte was easy. And so, just as he was going away again, it
- came into my head, I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of
- it, but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news. So upon
- that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave, and seemed to know
- something or other, and at last he said in a whisper, 'For fear any
- unpleasant report should reach the young ladies under your care as to
- their sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say, that I
- believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope Mrs. Dashwood will
- do very well.'"
- "What! is Fanny ill?"
- "That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I, 'is Mrs.
- Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the long and the short of
- the matter, by all I can learn, seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars,
- the very young man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
- turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing in it), Mr.
- Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged above this twelvemonth to my
- cousin Lucy!--There's for you, my dear!--And not a creature knowing a
- syllable of the matter, except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a
- thing possible?-- There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
- but that matters should be brought so forward between them, and nobody
- suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened to see them together,
- or I am sure I should have found it out directly. Well, and so this
- was kept a great secret, for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor
- your brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--till this very
- morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a well-meaning creature, but no
- conjurer, popt it all out. 'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are
- all so fond of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
- and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all alone at her
- carpet-work, little suspecting what was to come--for she had just been
- saying to your brother, only five minutes before, that she thought to
- make a match between Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget
- who. So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity and pride.
- She fell into violent hysterics immediately, with such screams as
- reached your brother's ears, as he was sitting in his own dressing-room
- down stairs, thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the
- country. So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place, for
- Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming what was going on.
- Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say, I think she was used very
- hardly; for your sister scolded like any fury, and soon drove her into
- a fainting fit. Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
- and your brother, he walked about the room, and said he did not know
- what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared they should not stay a minute
- longer in the house, and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS
- knees too, to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed up
- their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again, and he was so
- frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan, and Mr. Donavan found
- the house in all this uproar. The carriage was at the door ready to
- take my poor cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he came
- off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says, she could hardly walk; and
- Nancy, she was almost as bad. I declare, I have no patience with your
- sister; and I hope, with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of
- her. Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he hears of
- it! To have his love used so scornfully! for they say he is monstrous
- fond of her, as well he may. I should not wonder, if he was to be in
- the greatest passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
- had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is, that he is
- gone back again to Harley Street, that he may be within call when Mrs.
- Ferrars is told of it, for she was sent for as soon as ever my cousins
- left the house, for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
- and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for either of them. I
- have no notion of people's making such a to-do about money and
- greatness. There is no reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should
- not marry; for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well by her
- son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself, she knows better than
- any body how to make the most of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs.
- Ferrars would only allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as
- good an appearance with it as any body else would with eight. Lord!
- how snug they might live in such another cottage as yours--or a little
- bigger--with two maids, and two men; and I believe I could help them to
- a housemaid, for my Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit
- them exactly."
- Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had time enough to collect
- her thoughts, she was able to give such an answer, and make such
- observations, as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
- Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary interest
- in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late often hoped might be the
- case) had ceased to imagine her at all attached to Edward; and happy
- above all the rest, in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
- to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to give her judgment,
- as she believed, with impartiality on the conduct of every one
- concerned in it.
- She could hardly determine what her own expectation of its event really
- was; though she earnestly tried to drive away the notion of its being
- possible to end otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and
- Lucy. What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could not be a
- doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear; and still more anxious to
- know how Edward would conduct himself. For HIM she felt much
- compassion;--for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to
- procure that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
- As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject, Elinor soon saw the
- necessity of preparing Marianne for its discussion. No time was to be
- lost in undeceiving her, in making her acquainted with the real truth,
- and in endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
- without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister, or any
- resentment against Edward.
- Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going to remove what she
- really believed to be her sister's chief consolation,--to give such
- particulars of Edward as she feared would ruin him for ever in her good
- opinion,-and to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
- which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own disappointment
- over again. But unwelcome as such a task must be, it was necessary to
- be done, and Elinor therefore hastened to perform it.
- She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own feelings, or to
- represent herself as suffering much, any otherwise than as the
- self-command she had practised since her first knowledge of Edward's
- engagement, might suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
- Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could not be given
- without emotion, it was not accompanied by violent agitation, nor
- impetuous grief.--THAT belonged rather to the hearer, for Marianne
- listened with horror, and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the
- comforter of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs; and
- all the comfort that could be given by assurances of her own composure
- of mind, and a very earnest vindication of Edward from every charge but
- of imprudence, was readily offered.
- But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither. Edward seemed
- a second Willoughby; and acknowledging as Elinor did, that she HAD
- loved him most sincerely, could she feel less than herself! As for
- Lucy Steele, she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
- incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could not be persuaded
- at first to believe, and afterwards to pardon, any former affection of
- Edward for her. She would not even admit it to have been natural; and
- Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so, by that which only
- could convince her, a better knowledge of mankind.
- Her first communication had reached no farther than to state the fact
- of the engagement, and the length of time it had existed.--Marianne's
- feelings had then broken in, and put an end to all regularity of
- detail; and for some time all that could be done was to soothe her
- distress, lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
- question on her side, which led to farther particulars, was,--
- "How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has he written to you?"
- "I have known it these four months. When Lucy first came to Barton
- Park last November, she told me in confidence of her engagement."
- At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment which her
- lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder, she exclaimed--
- "Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
- Elinor confirmed it.
- "What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this been on your
- heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
- "It was not fit that you should then know how much I was the reverse!"
- "Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--so cheerful!--how
- have you been supported?"--
- "By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to Lucy, obliged me
- to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore, to avoid giving any hint of
- the truth; and I owed it to my family and friends, not to create in
- them a solicitude about me, which it could not be in my power to
- satisfy."
- Marianne seemed much struck.
- "I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my mother," added
- Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--but without betraying
- my trust, I never could have convinced you."
- "Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
- "Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort of others was
- dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing how much I felt.
- Now, I can think and speak of it with little emotion. I would not have
- you suffer on my account; for I assure you I no longer suffer
- materially myself. I have many things to support me. I am not
- conscious of having provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my
- own, I have borne it as much as possible without spreading it farther.
- I acquit Edward of essential misconduct. I wish him very happy; and I
- am so sure of his always doing his duty, that though now he may harbour
- some regret, in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
- and that is the foundation on which every thing good may be built.--And
- after all, Marianne, after all that is bewitching in the idea of a
- single and constant attachment, and all that can be said of one's
- happiness depending entirely on any particular person, it is not
- meant--it is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.-- Edward
- will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior in person and
- understanding to half her sex; and time and habit will teach him to
- forget that he ever thought another superior to HER."--
- "If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne, "if the loss of what
- is most valued is so easily to be made up by something else, your
- resolution, your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
- wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
- "I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever felt much.--For
- four months, Marianne, I have had all this hanging on my mind, without
- being at liberty to speak of it to a single creature; knowing that it
- would make you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained to
- you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.-- It was told
- me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the very person herself, whose
- prior engagement ruined all my prospects; and told me, as I thought,
- with triumph.-- This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to
- oppose, by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
- deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have had her
- hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.-- I have known
- myself to be divided from Edward for ever, without hearing one
- circumstance that could make me less desire the connection.--Nothing
- has proved him unworthy; nor has anything declared him indifferent to
- me.-- I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister, and
- the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the punishment of an
- attachment, without enjoying its advantages.-- And all this has been
- going on at a time, when, as you know too well, it has not been my only
- unhappiness.-- If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
- may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure of mind with which
- I have brought myself at present to consider the matter, the
- consolation that I have been willing to admit, have been the effect of
- constant and painful exertion;--they did not spring up of
- themselves;--they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.-- No,
- Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence, perhaps nothing
- could have kept me entirely--not even what I owed to my dearest
- friends--from openly shewing that I was VERY unhappy."--
- Marianne was quite subdued.--
- "Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate myself for ever.--How
- barbarous have I been to you!--you, who have been my only comfort, who
- have borne with me in all my misery, who have seemed to be only
- suffering for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I can
- make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself, I have been trying
- to do it away."
- The tenderest caresses followed this confession. In such a frame of
- mind as she was now in, Elinor had no difficulty in obtaining from her
- whatever promise she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
- never to speak of the affair to any one with the least appearance of
- bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying the smallest increase of
- dislike to her;--and even to see Edward himself, if chance should bring
- them together, without any diminution of her usual cordiality.-- These
- were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt that she had injured,
- no reparation could be too much for her to make.
- She performed her promise of being discreet, to admiration.--She
- attended to all that Mrs. Jennings had to say upon the subject, with an
- unchanging complexion, dissented from her in nothing, and was heard
- three times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise of Lucy
- with only moving from one chair to another, and when Mrs. Jennings
- talked of Edward's affection, it cost her only a spasm in her
- throat.--Such advances towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel
- equal to any thing herself.
- The next morning brought a farther trial of it, in a visit from their
- brother, who came with a most serious aspect to talk over the dreadful
- affair, and bring them news of his wife.
- "You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity, as soon as
- he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery that took place under
- our roof yesterday."
- They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful a moment for speech.
- "Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully. Mrs. Ferrars
- too--in short it has been a scene of such complicated distress--but I
- will hope that the storm may be weathered without our being any of us
- quite overcome. Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday. But I
- would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there is nothing materially
- to be apprehended; her constitution is a good one, and her resolution
- equal to any thing. She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an
- angel! She says she never shall think well of anybody again; and one
- cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--meeting with such
- ingratitude, where so much kindness had been shewn, so much confidence
- had been placed! It was quite out of the benevolence of her heart,
- that she had asked these young women to her house; merely because she
- thought they deserved some attention, were harmless, well-behaved
- girls, and would be pleasant companions; for otherwise we both wished
- very much to have invited you and Marianne to be with us, while your
- kind friend there, was attending her daughter. And now to be so
- rewarded! 'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
- affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead of them.'"
- Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done, he went on.
- "What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny broke it to her, is
- not to be described. While she with the truest affection had been
- planning a most eligible connection for him, was it to be supposed that
- he could be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such a
- suspicion could never have entered her head! If she suspected ANY
- prepossession elsewhere, it could not be in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to
- be sure,' said she, 'I might have thought myself safe.' She was quite
- in an agony. We consulted together, however, as to what should be
- done, and at last she determined to send for Edward. He came. But I
- am sorry to relate what ensued. All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to
- make him put an end to the engagement, assisted too as you may well
- suppose by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of no avail.
- Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded. I never thought Edward
- so stubborn, so unfeeling before. His mother explained to him her
- liberal designs, in case of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she
- would settle on him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax,
- brings in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters grew
- desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition to this, if he
- still persisted in this low connection, represented to him the certain
- penury that must attend the match. His own two thousand pounds she
- protested should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
- would she be from affording him the smallest assistance, that if he
- were to enter into any profession with a view of better support, she
- would do all in her power to prevent him advancing in it."
- Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation, clapped her hands
- together, and cried, "Gracious God! can this be possible!"
- "Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother, "at the obstinacy
- which could resist such arguments as these. Your exclamation is very
- natural."
- Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered her promises, and
- forbore.
- "All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain. Edward said
- very little; but what he did say, was in the most determined manner.
- Nothing should prevail on him to give up his engagement. He would
- stand to it, cost him what it might."
- "Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity, no longer able to be
- silent, "he has acted like an honest man! I beg your pardon, Mr.
- Dashwood, but if he had done otherwise, I should have thought him a
- rascal. I have some little concern in the business, as well as
- yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe there is not a
- better kind of girl in the world, nor one who more deserves a good
- husband."
- John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature was calm, not open
- to provocation, and he never wished to offend anybody, especially
- anybody of good fortune. He therefore replied, without any resentment,
- "I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any relation of yours,
- madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say, a very deserving young woman,
- but in the present case you know, the connection must be impossible.
- And to have entered into a secret engagement with a young man under her
- uncle's care, the son of a woman especially of such very large fortune
- as Mrs. Ferrars, is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In
- short, I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person whom
- you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish her extremely happy;
- and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout the whole, has been such as every
- conscientious, good mother, in like circumstances, would adopt. It has
- been dignified and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
- it will be a bad one."
- Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension; and Elinor's heart wrung
- for the feelings of Edward, while braving his mother's threats, for a
- woman who could not reward him.
- "Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
- "I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:-- Edward is
- dismissed for ever from his mother's notice. He left her house
- yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether he is still in town, I do
- not know; for WE of course can make no inquiry."
- "Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
- "What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration. Born to the
- prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive a situation more
- deplorable. The interest of two thousand pounds--how can a man live on
- it?--and when to that is added the recollection, that he might, but for
- his own folly, within three months have been in the receipt of two
- thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has thirty thousand
- pounds,) I cannot picture to myself a more wretched condition. We must
- all feel for him; and the more so, because it is totally out of our
- power to assist him."
- "Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure he should be very
- welcome to bed and board at my house; and so I would tell him if I
- could see him. It is not fit that he should be living about at his own
- charge now, at lodgings and taverns."
- Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward, though she
- could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
- "If he would only have done as well by himself," said John Dashwood,
- "as all his friends were disposed to do by him, he might now have been
- in his proper situation, and would have wanted for nothing. But as it
- is, it must be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
- thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than all--his
- mother has determined, with a very natural kind of spirit, to settle
- THAT estate upon Robert immediately, which might have been Edward's, on
- proper conditions. I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking
- over the business."
- "Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge. Everybody has a way
- of their own. But I don't think mine would be, to make one son
- independent, because another had plagued me."
- Marianne got up and walked about the room.
- "Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man," continued John,
- "than to see his younger brother in possession of an estate which might
- have been his own? Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
- A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion, concluded his
- visit; and with repeated assurances to his sisters that he really
- believed there was no material danger in Fanny's indisposition, and
- that they need not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
- leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments on the present
- occasion, as far at least as it regarded Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the
- Dashwoods', and Edward's.
- Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he quitted the room; and
- as her vehemence made reserve impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in
- Mrs. Jennings, they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the
- party.
- CHAPTER 38
- Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's conduct, but only
- Elinor and Marianne understood its true merit. THEY only knew how
- little he had had to tempt him to be disobedient, and how small was the
- consolation, beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could remain
- to him in the loss of friends and fortune. Elinor gloried in his
- integrity; and Marianne forgave all his offences in compassion for his
- punishment. But though confidence between them was, by this public
- discovery, restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on which
- either of them were fond of dwelling when alone. Elinor avoided it
- upon principle, as tending to fix still more upon her thoughts, by the
- too warm, too positive assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's
- continued affection for herself which she rather wished to do away; and
- Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying to converse upon a topic
- which always left her more dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the
- comparison it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
- She felt all the force of that comparison; but not as her sister had
- hoped, to urge her to exertion now; she felt it with all the pain of
- continual self-reproach, regretted most bitterly that she had never
- exerted herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
- without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened that she
- still fancied present exertion impossible, and therefore it only
- dispirited her more.
- Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards, of affairs
- in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings. But though so much of the
- matter was known to them already, that Mrs. Jennings might have had
- enough to do in spreading that knowledge farther, without seeking after
- more, she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort and
- inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could; and nothing but the
- hindrance of more visitors than usual, had prevented her going to them
- within that time.
- The third day succeeding their knowledge of the particulars, was so
- fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw many to Kensington Gardens,
- though it was only the second week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor
- were of the number; but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were
- again in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them, chose rather
- to stay at home, than venture into so public a place.
- An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined them soon after they
- entered the Gardens, and Elinor was not sorry that by her continuing
- with them, and engaging all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was
- herself left to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
- nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody who could by
- any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting to her. But at last
- she found herself with some surprise, accosted by Miss Steele, who,
- though looking rather shy, expressed great satisfaction in meeting
- them, and on receiving encouragement from the particular kindness of
- Mrs. Jennings, left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
- Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
- "Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you any thing if you
- ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
- It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity and Elinor's too,
- that she would tell any thing WITHOUT being asked; for nothing would
- otherwise have been learnt.
- "I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele, taking her familiarly by
- the arm--"for I wanted to see you of all things in the world." And
- then lowering her voice, "I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about
- it. Is she angry?"
- "Not at all, I believe, with you."
- "That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
- "I cannot suppose it possible that she should be."
- "I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have had such a time of
- it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage in my life. She vowed at first
- she would never trim me up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me
- again, so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to, and we are
- as good friends as ever. Look, she made me this bow to my hat, and put
- in the feather last night. There now, YOU are going to laugh at me
- too. But why should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
- the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part, I should never
- have known he DID like it better than any other colour, if he had not
- happened to say so. My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare
- sometimes I do not know which way to look before them."
- She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor had nothing to say,
- and therefore soon judged it expedient to find her way back again to
- the first.
- "Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly, "people may say what
- they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's declaring he would not have Lucy, for it
- is no such thing I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such
- ill-natured reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
- about it herself, you know, it was no business of other people to set
- it down for certain."
- "I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before, I assure you,"
- said Elinor.
- "Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well, and by more than
- one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks, that nobody in their senses could
- expect Mr. Ferrars to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty
- thousand pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had nothing at
- all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself. And besides that, my cousin
- Richard said himself, that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr.
- Ferrars would be off; and when Edward did not come near us for three
- days, I could not tell what to think myself; and I believe in my heart
- Lucy gave it up all for lost; for we came away from your brother's
- Wednesday, and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday, and
- Saturday, and did not know what was become of him. Once Lucy thought
- to write to him, but then her spirits rose against that. However this
- morning he came just as we came home from church; and then it all came
- out, how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street, and been
- talked to by his mother and all of them, and how he had declared before
- them all that he loved nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he
- have. And how he had been so worried by what passed, that as soon as
- he had went away from his mother's house, he had got upon his horse,
- and rid into the country, some where or other; and how he had stayed
- about at an inn all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
- of it. And after thinking it all over and over again, he said, it
- seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune, and no nothing at all, it
- would be quite unkind to keep her on to the engagement, because it must
- be for her loss, for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no
- hope of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders, as he had some
- thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy, and how was they to live
- upon that?--He could not bear to think of her doing no better, and so
- he begged, if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
- matter directly, and leave him shift for himself. I heard him say all
- this as plain as could possibly be. And it was entirely for HER sake,
- and upon HER account, that he said a word about being off, and not upon
- his own. I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being tired
- of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any thing like it. But,
- to be sure, Lucy would not give ear to such kind of talking; so she
- told him directly (with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
- and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things you
- know)--she told him directly, she had not the least mind in the world
- to be off, for she could live with him upon a trifle, and how little so
- ever he might have, she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
- or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy, and talked
- on some time about what they should do, and they agreed he should take
- orders directly, and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
- And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin called from
- below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in her coach, and would take
- one of us to Kensington Gardens; so I was forced to go into the room
- and interrupt them, to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did
- not care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put on a pair of
- silk stockings and came off with the Richardsons."
- "I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them," said Elinor;
- "you were all in the same room together, were not you?"
- "No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you think people make love
- when any body else is by? Oh, for shame!--To be sure you must know
- better than that. (Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in
- the drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening at the
- door."
- "How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me what you only
- learnt yourself by listening at the door? I am sorry I did not know it
- before; for I certainly would not have suffered you to give me
- particulars of a conversation which you ought not to have known
- yourself. How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
- "Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at the door, and heard
- what I could. And I am sure Lucy would have done just the same by me;
- for a year or two back, when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets
- together, she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind a
- chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
- Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss Steele could not be
- kept beyond a couple of minutes, from what was uppermost in her mind.
- "Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she; "but now he is
- lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an ill-natured woman his mother is,
- an't she? And your brother and sister were not very kind! However, I
- shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure they did send
- us home in their own chariot, which was more than I looked for. And
- for my part, I was all in a fright for fear your sister should ask us
- for the huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
- nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine out of sight.
- Edward have got some business at Oxford, he says; so he must go there
- for a time; and after THAT, as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he
- will be ordained. I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
- (giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what my cousins will
- say, when they hear of it. They will tell me I should write to the
- Doctor, to get Edward the curacy of his new living. I know they will;
- but I am sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.-- 'La!' I
- shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think of such a thing? I
- write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
- "Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared against the worst.
- You have got your answer ready."
- Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject, but the approach of
- her own party made another more necessary.
- "Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal more to say to
- you, but I must not stay away from them not any longer. I assure you
- they are very genteel people. He makes a monstrous deal of money, and
- they keep their own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings
- about it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she is not
- in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same; and if anything
- should happen to take you and your sister away, and Mrs. Jennings
- should want company, I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay
- with her for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
- won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry Miss Marianne was
- not here. Remember me kindly to her. La! if you have not got your
- spotted muslin on!--I wonder you was not afraid of its being torn."
- Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had time only to pay
- her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings, before her company was
- claimed by Mrs. Richardson; and Elinor was left in possession of
- knowledge which might feed her powers of reflection some time, though
- she had learnt very little more than what had been already foreseen and
- foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage with Lucy was as firmly
- determined on, and the time of its taking place remained as absolutely
- uncertain, as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
- exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment, of
- which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
- As soon as they returned to the carriage, Mrs. Jennings was eager for
- information; but as Elinor wished to spread as little as possible
- intelligence that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained, she
- confined herself to the brief repetition of such simple particulars, as
- she felt assured that Lucy, for the sake of her own consequence, would
- choose to have known. The continuance of their engagement, and the
- means that were able to be taken for promoting its end, was all her
- communication; and this produced from Mrs. Jennings the following
- natural remark.
- "Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how THAT will
- end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding no good comes of it,
- will set down upon a curacy of fifty pounds a-year, with the interest
- of his two thousand pounds, and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr.
- Pratt can give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and Lord
- help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see what I can give them
- towards furnishing their house. Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I
- talked of t'other day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all
- works.-- Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
- The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the two-penny post from
- Lucy herself. It was as follows:
- "Bartlett's Building, March.
- "I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
- liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
- friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
- a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
- all the troubles we have went through lately,
- therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
- to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
- dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
- as we must always be in one another's love. We have
- had great trials, and great persecutions, but
- however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
- many friends, yourself not the least among them,
- whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
- remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
- it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
- dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
- him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
- parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
- duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
- and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
- he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
- he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
- have my affections; our prospects are not very
- bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
- the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
- it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
- body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
- will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
- trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
- or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
- assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
- she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
- nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
- trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
- any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
- cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
- me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
- and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
- and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
- chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
- "I am, &c."
- As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed what she concluded to
- be its writer's real design, by placing it in the hands of Mrs.
- Jennings, who read it aloud with many comments of satisfaction and
- praise.
- "Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye, that was quite
- proper to let him be off if he would. That was just like Lucy.--Poor
- soul! I wish I COULD get him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me
- dear Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl as ever
- lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence is very prettily turned.
- Yes, yes, I will go and see her, sure enough. How attentive she is, to
- think of every body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is as
- pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head and heart great
- credit."
- CHAPTER 39
- The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than two months in town,
- and Marianne's impatience to be gone increased every day. She sighed
- for the air, the liberty, the quiet of the country; and fancied that if
- any place could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
- less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much less bent
- on its being effected immediately, as that she was conscious of the
- difficulties of so long a journey, which Marianne could not be brought
- to acknowledge. She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts
- towards its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes to
- their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the eloquence of her
- good-will, when a plan was suggested, which, though detaining them from
- home yet a few weeks longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more
- eligible than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland about
- the end of March, for the Easter holidays; and Mrs. Jennings, with both
- her friends, received a very warm invitation from Charlotte to go with
- them. This would not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy
- of Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real politeness by
- Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very great amendment of his
- manners towards them since her sister had been known to be unhappy,
- induced her to accept it with pleasure.
- When she told Marianne what she had done, however, her first reply was
- not very auspicious.
- "Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation. "No, I cannot go to
- Cleveland."--
- "You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation is not...that it
- is not in the neighbourhood of..."
- "But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go into Somersetshire.--There,
- where I looked forward to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to
- go there."
- Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming such
- feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by working on
- others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure which would fix the
- time of her returning to that dear mother, whom she so much wished to
- see, in a more eligible, more comfortable manner, than any other plan
- could do, and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland, which
- was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to Barton was not
- beyond one day, though a long day's journey; and their mother's servant
- might easily come there to attend them down; and as there could be no
- occasion of their staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be
- at home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's affection
- for her mother was sincere, it must triumph with little difficulty,
- over the imaginary evils she had started.
- Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guests, that she
- pressed them very earnestly to return with her again from Cleveland.
- Elinor was grateful for the attention, but it could not alter her
- design; and their mother's concurrence being readily gained, every
- thing relative to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--and
- Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement of the hours that
- were yet to divide her from Barton.
- "Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall do without the Miss
- Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's address to him when he first called on
- her, after their leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
- upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we shall be, when I
- come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape at one another as dull as two
- cats."
- Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous sketch of their
- future ennui, to provoke him to make that offer, which might give
- himself an escape from it;--and if so, she had soon afterwards good
- reason to think her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the
- window to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print, which she
- was going to copy for her friend, he followed her to it with a look of
- particular meaning, and conversed with her there for several minutes.
- The effect of his discourse on the lady too, could not escape her
- observation, for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
- changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear, to one close by
- the piano forte on which Marianne was playing, she could not keep
- herself from seeing that Elinor changed colour, attended with
- agitation, and was too intent on what he said to pursue her
- employment.-- Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the
- interval of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another, some words
- of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear, in which he seemed to be
- apologising for the badness of his house. This set the matter beyond a
- doubt. She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary to do so;
- but supposed it to be the proper etiquette. What Elinor said in reply
- she could not distinguish, but judged from the motion of her lips, that
- she did not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
- commended her in her heart for being so honest. They then talked on
- for a few minutes longer without her catching a syllable, when another
- lucky stop in Marianne's performance brought her these words in the
- Colonel's calm voice,--
- "I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
- Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech, she was almost
- ready to cry out, "Lord! what should hinder it?"--but checking her
- desire, confined herself to this silent ejaculation.
- "This is very strange!--sure he need not wait to be older."
- This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not seem to offend or
- mortify his fair companion in the least, for on their breaking up the
- conference soon afterwards, and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings
- very plainly heard Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to
- feel what she said,
- "I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
- Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude, and only wondered that
- after hearing such a sentence, the Colonel should be able to take leave
- of them, as he immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
- without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old friend could
- have made so indifferent a suitor.
- What had really passed between them was to this effect.
- "I have heard," said he, with great compassion, "of the injustice your
- friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered from his family; for if I understand
- the matter right, he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
- in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.-- Have I been
- rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
- Elinor told him that it was.
- "The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied, with great
- feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide, two young people long
- attached to each other, is terrible.-- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what
- she may be doing--what she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr.
- Ferrars two or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased with
- him. He is not a young man with whom one can be intimately acquainted
- in a short time, but I have seen enough of him to wish him well for his
- own sake, and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more. I understand
- that he intends to take orders. Will you be so good as to tell him
- that the living of Delaford, now just vacant, as I am informed by this
- day's post, is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
- perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now, it may be
- nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it were more valuable.-- It
- is a rectory, but a small one; the late incumbent, I believe, did not
- make more than 200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable of
- improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as to afford him a very
- comfortable income. Such as it is, however, my pleasure in presenting
- it to him, will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
- Elinor's astonishment at this commission could hardly have been
- greater, had the Colonel been really making her an offer of his hand.
- The preferment, which only two days before she had considered as
- hopeless for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--and
- SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to bestow it!--Her
- emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had attributed to a very different
- cause;--but whatever minor feelings less pure, less pleasing, might
- have a share in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
- and her gratitude for the particular friendship, which together
- prompted Colonel Brandon to this act, were strongly felt, and warmly
- expressed. She thanked him for it with all her heart, spoke of
- Edward's principles and disposition with that praise which she knew
- them to deserve; and promised to undertake the commission with
- pleasure, if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
- to another. But at the same time, she could not help thinking that no
- one could so well perform it as himself. It was an office in short,
- from which, unwilling to give Edward the pain of receiving an
- obligation from HER, she would have been very glad to be spared
- herself;-- but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy, declining
- it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being given through her
- means, that she would not on any account make farther opposition.
- Edward, she believed, was still in town, and fortunately she had heard
- his address from Miss Steele. She could undertake therefore to inform
- him of it, in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
- Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage in securing so
- respectable and agreeable a neighbour, and THEN it was that he
- mentioned with regret, that the house was small and indifferent;--an
- evil which Elinor, as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very
- light of, at least as far as regarded its size.
- "The smallness of the house," said she, "I cannot imagine any
- inconvenience to them, for it will be in proportion to their family and
- income."
- By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE was considering Mr.
- Ferrars's marriage as the certain consequence of the presentation; for
- he did not suppose it possible that Delaford living could supply such
- an income, as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle
- on--and he said so.
- "This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars comfortable
- as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry. I am sorry to say that
- my patronage ends with this; and my interest is hardly more extensive.
- If, however, by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
- him farther, I must think very differently of him from what I now do,
- if I am not as ready to be useful to him then as I sincerely wish I
- could be at present. What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
- since it can advance him so little towards what must be his principal,
- his only object of happiness. His marriage must still be a distant
- good;--at least, I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
- Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood, so justly offended the
- delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings; but after this narration of what
- really passed between Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at
- the window, the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
- perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited, nor less
- properly worded than if it had arisen from an offer of marriage.
- CHAPTER 40
- "Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings, sagaciously smiling, as soon
- as the gentleman had withdrawn, "I do not ask you what the Colonel has
- been saying to you; for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of
- hearing, I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
- And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life, and I wish you
- joy of it with all my heart."
- "Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter of great joy to me;
- and I feel the goodness of Colonel Brandon most sensibly. There are
- not many men who would act as he has done. Few people who have so
- compassionate a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
- "Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least astonished at it
- in the world, for I have often thought of late, there was nothing more
- likely to happen."
- "You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's general benevolence;
- but at least you could not foresee that the opportunity would so very
- soon occur."
- "Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that, when a man has
- once made up his mind to such a thing, somehow or other he will soon
- find an opportunity. Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and
- again; and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think I
- shall soon know where to look for them."
- "You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose," said Elinor, with a
- faint smile.
- "Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house being a bad one,
- I do not know what the Colonel would be at, for it is as good a one as
- ever I saw."
- "He spoke of its being out of repair."
- "Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--who should do
- it but himself?"
- They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to announce the
- carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings immediately preparing to
- go, said,--
- "Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half my talk out.
- But, however, we may have it all over in the evening; for we shall be
- quite alone. I do not ask you to go with me, for I dare say your mind
- is too full of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
- long to tell your sister all about it."
- Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
- "Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it; but I shall not mention
- it at present to any body else."
- "Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed. "Then you
- would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think of going as far as
- Holborn to-day."
- "No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please. One day's delay will not be
- very material; and till I have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought
- not to be mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly. It is
- of importance that no time should be lost with him, for he will of
- course have much to do relative to his ordination."
- This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly. Why Mr.
- Ferrars was to have been written to about it in such a hurry, she could
- not immediately comprehend. A few moments' reflection, however,
- produced a very happy idea, and she exclaimed;--
- "Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be the man. Well, so
- much the better for him. Ay, to be sure, he must be ordained in
- readiness; and I am very glad to find things are so forward between
- you. But, my dear, is not this rather out of character? Should not
- the Colonel write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
- Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of Mrs. Jennings's
- speech, neither did she think it worth inquiring into; and therefore
- only replied to its conclusion.
- "Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather wished any one to
- announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars than himself."
- "And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd kind of delicacy!
- However, I will not disturb you (seeing her preparing to write.) You
- know your own concerns best. So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of
- any thing to please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
- And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
- "I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear. I should be
- very glad to get her so good a mistress. But whether she would do for
- a lady's maid, I am sure I can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid,
- and works very well at her needle. However, you will think of all that
- at your leisure."
- "Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing much of what she said,
- and more anxious to be alone, than to be mistress of the subject.
- How she should begin--how she should express herself in her note to
- Edward, was now all her concern. The particular circumstances between
- them made a difficulty of that which to any other person would have
- been the easiest thing in the world; but she equally feared to say too
- much or too little, and sat deliberating over her paper, with the pen
- in her hand, till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
- He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to the carriage, as he
- came to leave his farewell card; and she, after apologising for not
- returning herself, had obliged him to enter, by saying that Miss
- Dashwood was above, and wanted to speak with him on very particular
- business.
- Elinor had just been congratulating herself, in the midst of her
- perplexity, that however difficult it might be to express herself
- properly by letter, it was at least preferable to giving the
- information by word of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her
- upon this greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
- were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had not seen him
- before since his engagement became public, and therefore not since his
- knowing her to be acquainted with it; which, with the consciousness of
- what she had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him, made her
- feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes. He too was much
- distressed; and they sat down together in a most promising state of
- embarrassment.--Whether he had asked her pardon for his intrusion on
- first coming into the room, he could not recollect; but determining to
- be on the safe side, he made his apology in form as soon as he could
- say any thing, after taking a chair.
- "Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished to speak with me, at
- least I understood her so--or I certainly should not have intruded on
- you in such a manner; though at the same time, I should have been
- extremely sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
- especially as it will most likely be some time--it is not probable that
- I should soon have the pleasure of meeting you again. I go to Oxford
- tomorrow."
- "You would not have gone, however," said Elinor, recovering herself,
- and determined to get over what she so much dreaded as soon as
- possible, "without receiving our good wishes, even if we had not been
- able to give them in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she
- said. I have something of consequence to inform you of, which I was on
- the point of communicating by paper. I am charged with a most
- agreeable office (breathing rather faster than usual as she spoke.)
- Colonel Brandon, who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to
- say, that understanding you mean to take orders, he has great pleasure
- in offering you the living of Delaford now just vacant, and only wishes
- it were more valuable. Allow me to congratulate you on having so
- respectable and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that the
- living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much more considerable,
- and such as might better enable you to--as might be more than a
- temporary accommodation to yourself--such, in short, as might establish
- all your views of happiness."
- What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself, it cannot be expected
- that any one else should say for him. He LOOKED all the astonishment
- which such unexpected, such unthought-of information could not fail of
- exciting; but he said only these two words,
- "Colonel Brandon!"
- "Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution, as some of the
- worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means it as a testimony of his concern
- for what has lately passed--for the cruel situation in which the
- unjustifiable conduct of your family has placed you--a concern which I
- am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends, must share; and
- likewise as a proof of his high esteem for your general character, and
- his particular approbation of your behaviour on the present occasion."
- "Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
- "The unkindness of your own relations has made you astonished to find
- friendship any where."
- "No," replied he, with sudden consciousness, "not to find it in YOU;
- for I cannot be ignorant that to you, to your goodness, I owe it
- all.--I feel it--I would express it if I could--but, as you well know,
- I am no orator."
- "You are very much mistaken. I do assure you that you owe it entirely,
- at least almost entirely, to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's
- discernment of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
- till I understood his design, that the living was vacant; nor had it
- ever occurred to me that he might have had such a living in his gift.
- As a friend of mine, of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he
- HAS, still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word, you owe
- nothing to my solicitation."
- Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share in the action, but
- she was at the same time so unwilling to appear as the benefactress of
- Edward, that she acknowledged it with hesitation; which probably
- contributed to fix that suspicion in his mind which had recently
- entered it. For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had
- ceased to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
- "Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth and respectability. I have
- always heard him spoken of as such, and your brother I know esteems him
- highly. He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners perfectly
- the gentleman."
- "Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him, on farther
- acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be, and as you will be
- such very near neighbours (for I understand the parsonage is almost
- close to the mansion-house,) it is particularly important that he
- SHOULD be all this."
- Edward made no answer; but when she had turned away her head, gave her
- a look so serious, so earnest, so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he
- might hereafter wish the distance between the parsonage and the
- mansion-house much greater.
- "Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street," said he, soon
- afterwards, rising from his chair.
- Elinor told him the number of the house.
- "I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks which you will not
- allow me to give YOU; to assure him that he has made me a very--an
- exceedingly happy man."
- Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted, with a very
- earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing good wishes for his
- happiness in every change of situation that might befall him; on HIS,
- with rather an attempt to return the same good will, than the power of
- expressing it.
- "When I see him again," said Elinor to herself, as the door shut him
- out, "I shall see him the husband of Lucy."
- And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down to reconsider the
- past, recall the words and endeavour to comprehend all the feelings of
- Edward; and, of course, to reflect on her own with discontent.
- When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned from seeing people
- whom she had never seen before, and of whom therefore she must have a
- great deal to say, her mind was so much more occupied by the important
- secret in her possession, than by anything else, that she reverted to
- it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
- "Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up the young man. Did not I
- do right?--And I suppose you had no great difficulty--You did not find
- him very unwilling to accept your proposal?"
- "No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
- "Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems all to depend upon
- that."
- "Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind of forms, that I
- can hardly even conjecture as to the time, or the preparation
- necessary; but I suppose two or three months will complete his
- ordination."
- "Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear, how calmly
- you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two or three months! Lord
- bless me!--I am sure it would put ME quite out of patience!--And though
- one would be very glad to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think
- it is not worth while to wait two or three months for him. Sure
- somebody else might be found that would do as well; somebody that is in
- orders already."
- "My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?-- Why,
- Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
- "Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade me that the
- Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving ten guineas to Mr.
- Ferrars!"
- The deception could not continue after this; and an explanation
- immediately took place, by which both gained considerable amusement for
- the moment, without any material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs.
- Jennings only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
- without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
- "Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she, after the first
- ebullition of surprise and satisfaction was over, "and very likely MAY
- be out of repair; but to hear a man apologising, as I thought, for a
- house that to my knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor,
- and I think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--and to
- you too, that had been used to live in Barton cottage!-- It seems quite
- ridiculous. But, my dear, we must touch up the Colonel to do some
- thing to the parsonage, and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy
- goes to it."
- "But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea of the living's
- being enough to allow them to marry."
- "The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two thousand a-year
- himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry on less. Take my word
- for it, that, if I am alive, I shall be paying a visit at Delaford
- Parsonage before Michaelmas; and I am sure I shan't go if Lucy an't
- there."
- Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability of their not
- waiting for any thing more.
- CHAPTER 41
- Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon, proceeded with
- his happiness to Lucy; and such was the excess of it by the time he
- reached Bartlett's Buildings, that she was able to assure Mrs.
- Jennings, who called on her again the next day with her
- congratulations, that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
- her life.
- Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at least very certain; and
- she joined Mrs. Jennings most heartily in her expectation of their
- being all comfortably together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
- So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness to give Elinor
- that credit which Edward WOULD give her, that she spoke of her
- friendship for them both with the most grateful warmth, was ready to
- own all their obligation to her, and openly declared that no exertion
- for their good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future, would
- ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of doing any thing in
- the world for those she really valued. As for Colonel Brandon, she was
- not only ready to worship him as a saint, but was moreover truly
- anxious that he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
- anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost; and scarcely
- resolved to avail herself, at Delaford, as far as she possibly could,
- of his servants, his carriage, his cows, and his poultry.
- It was now above a week since John Dashwood had called in Berkeley
- Street, and as since that time no notice had been taken by them of his
- wife's indisposition, beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel
- it necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation, however,
- which not only opposed her own inclination, but which had not the
- assistance of any encouragement from her companions. Marianne, not
- contented with absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent to
- prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings, though her
- carriage was always at Elinor's service, so very much disliked Mrs.
- John Dashwood, that not even her curiosity to see how she looked after
- the late discovery, nor her strong desire to affront her by taking
- Edward's part, could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company
- again. The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself to pay a
- visit, for which no one could really have less inclination, and to run
- the risk of a tete-a-tete with a woman, whom neither of the others had
- so much reason to dislike.
- Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could turn from the
- house, her husband accidentally came out. He expressed great pleasure
- in meeting Elinor, told her that he had been just going to call in
- Berkeley Street, and, assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see
- her, invited her to come in.
- They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody was there.
- "Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I will go to her
- presently, for I am sure she will not have the least objection in the
- world to seeing YOU.-- Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
- cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always great
- favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
- Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
- "I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied, "for I have a good deal
- to say to you. This living of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has
- he really given it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
- coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
- "It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given the living of
- Delaford to Edward."
- "Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no relationship!--no
- connection between them!--and now that livings fetch such a
- price!--what was the value of this?"
- "About two hundred a year."
- "Very well--and for the next presentation to a living of that
- value--supposing the late incumbent to have been old and sickly, and
- likely to vacate it soon--he might have got I dare say--fourteen
- hundred pounds. And how came he not to have settled that matter before
- this person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it, but a
- man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should be so improvident
- in a point of such common, such natural, concern!--Well, I am convinced
- that there is a vast deal of inconsistency in almost every human
- character. I suppose, however--on recollection--that the case may
- probably be THIS. Edward is only to hold the living till the person to
- whom the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough to
- take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
- Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively; and by relating that
- she had herself been employed in conveying the offer from Colonel
- Brandon to Edward, and, therefore, must understand the terms on which
- it was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
- "It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing what she
- said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
- "A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
- "Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be, Edward is a very lucky
- man.--You will not mention the matter to Fanny, however, for though I
- have broke it to her, and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like
- to hear it much talked of."
- Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing, that she
- thought Fanny might have borne with composure, an acquisition of wealth
- to her brother, by which neither she nor her child could be possibly
- impoverished.
- "Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the tone becoming so
- important a subject, "knows nothing about it at present, and I believe
- it will be best to keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may
- be.-- When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear of it all."
- "But why should such precaution be used?--Though it is not to be
- supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have the smallest satisfaction in
- knowing that her son has money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be
- quite out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour, is she
- supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her son, she cast him off
- for ever, and has made all those over whom she had any influence, cast
- him off likewise. Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined
- liable to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--she cannot
- be interested in any thing that befalls him.-- She would not be so weak
- as to throw away the comfort of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of
- a parent!"
- "Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good, but it is
- founded on ignorance of human nature. When Edward's unhappy match
- takes place, depend upon it his mother will feel as much as if she had
- never discarded him; and, therefore every circumstance that may
- accelerate that dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as
- possible. Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
- "You surprise me; I should think it must nearly have escaped her memory
- by THIS time."
- "You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one of the most
- affectionate mothers in the world."
- Elinor was silent.
- "We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause, "of ROBERT'S
- marrying Miss Morton."
- Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance of her brother's
- tone, calmly replied,
- "The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
- "Choice!--how do you mean?"
- "I only mean that I suppose, from your manner of speaking, it must be
- the same to Miss Morton whether she marry Edward or Robert."
- "Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert will now to all
- intents and purposes be considered as the eldest son;--and as to any
- thing else, they are both very agreeable young men: I do not know that
- one is superior to the other."
- Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short time silent.--His
- reflections ended thus.
- "Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand, and speaking in
- an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--and I WILL do it, because I know
- it must gratify you. I have good reason to think--indeed I have it
- from the best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise it
- would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but I have it from the
- very best authority--not that I ever precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say
- it herself--but her daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in
- short, whatever objections there might be against a certain--a certain
- connection--you understand me--it would have been far preferable to
- her, it would not have given her half the vexation that THIS does. I
- was exceedingly pleased to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that
- light--a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all. 'It would
- have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least evil of the two, and
- she would be glad to compound NOW for nothing worse.' But however, all
- that is quite out of the question--not to be thought of or
- mentioned--as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all that
- is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you of this, because I
- knew how much it must please you. Not that you have any reason to
- regret, my dear Elinor. There is no doubt of your doing exceedingly
- well--quite as well, or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has
- Colonel Brandon been with you lately?"
- Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity, and raise her
- self-importance, to agitate her nerves and fill her mind;--and she was
- therefore glad to be spared from the necessity of saying much in reply
- herself, and from the danger of hearing any thing more from her
- brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars. After a few moments'
- chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that Fanny was yet uninformed of her
- sister's being there, quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was
- left to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the gay
- unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner while enjoying so
- unfair a division of his mother's love and liberality, to the prejudice
- of his banished brother, earned only by his own dissipated course of
- life, and that brother's integrity, was confirming her most
- unfavourable opinion of his head and heart.
- They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves, before he began to
- speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard of the living, and was very
- inquisitive on the subject. Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as
- she had given them to John; and their effect on Robert, though very
- different, was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
- most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman, and living
- in a small parsonage-house, diverted him beyond measure;--and when to
- that was added the fanciful imagery of Edward reading prayers in a
- white surplice, and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith
- and Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
- Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable gravity, the
- conclusion of such folly, could not restrain her eyes from being fixed
- on him with a look that spoke all the contempt it excited. It was a
- look, however, very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings,
- and gave no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
- not by any reproof of hers, but by his own sensibility.
- "We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last, recovering from the
- affected laugh which had considerably lengthened out the genuine gaiety
- of the moment--"but, upon my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor
- Edward! he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--for I
- know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as well-meaning a fellow
- perhaps, as any in the world. You must not judge of him, Miss
- Dashwood, from YOUR slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are
- certainly not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born, you
- know, with the same powers,--the same address.-- Poor fellow!--to see
- him in a circle of strangers!--to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but
- upon my soul, I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
- and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my life, as
- when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.-- My mother was the
- first person who told me of it; and I, feeling myself called on to act
- with resolution, immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
- what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself, I must
- say, that if Edward does marry this young woman, I never will see him
- again.' That was what I said immediately.-- I was most uncommonly
- shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has done for himself
- completely--shut himself out for ever from all decent society!--but, as
- I directly said to my mother, I am not in the least surprised at it;
- from his style of education, it was always to be expected. My poor
- mother was half frantic."
- "Have you ever seen the lady?"
- "Yes; once, while she was staying in this house, I happened to drop in
- for ten minutes; and I saw quite enough of her. The merest awkward
- country girl, without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
- I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I should suppose
- likely to captivate poor Edward. I offered immediately, as soon as my
- mother related the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
- him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found, to do any thing,
- for unluckily, I was not in the way at first, and knew nothing of it
- till after the breach had taken place, when it was not for me, you
- know, to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few hours
- earlier--I think it is most probable--that something might have been
- hit on. I certainly should have represented it to Edward in a very
- strong light. 'My dear fellow,' I should have said, 'consider what you
- are doing. You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a
- one as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot help
- thinking, in short, that means might have been found. But now it is
- all too late. He must be starved, you know;--that is certain;
- absolutely starved."
- He had just settled this point with great composure, when the entrance
- of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject. But though SHE never
- spoke of it out of her own family, Elinor could see its influence on
- her mind, in the something like confusion of countenance with which she
- entered, and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself. She
- even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find that Elinor and her
- sister were so soon to leave town, as she had hoped to see more of
- them;--an exertion in which her husband, who attended her into the
- room, and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish every
- thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
- CHAPTER 42
- One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor received her
- brother's congratulations on their travelling so far towards Barton
- without any expense, and on Colonel Brandon's being to follow them to
- Cleveland in a day or two, completed the intercourse of the brother and
- sisters in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come to Norland
- whenever it should happen to be in their way, which of all things was
- the most unlikely to occur, with a more warm, though less public,
- assurance, from John to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should
- come to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting in the
- country.
- It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed determined to send
- her to Delaford;--a place, in which, of all others, she would now least
- chuse to visit, or wish to reside; for not only was it considered as
- her future home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy, when
- they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit her there.
- Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day, the two parties
- from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set out from their respective
- homes, to meet, by appointment, on the road. For the convenience of
- Charlotte and her child, they were to be more than two days on their
- journey, and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with Colonel
- Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after their arrival.
- Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort in London, and eager as
- she had long been to quit it, could not, when it came to the point, bid
- adieu to the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed those
- hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby, which were now extinguished
- for ever, without great pain. Nor could she leave the place in which
- Willoughby remained, busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which
- SHE could have no share, without shedding many tears.
- Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal, was more positive.
- She had no such object for her lingering thoughts to fix on, she left
- no creature behind, from whom it would give her a moment's regret to be
- divided for ever, she was pleased to be free herself from the
- persecution of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing her
- sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage, and she looked
- forward with hope to what a few months of tranquility at Barton might
- do towards restoring Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
- Their journey was safely performed. The second day brought them into
- the cherished, or the prohibited, county of Somerset, for as such was
- it dwelt on by turns in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of
- the third they drove up to Cleveland.
- Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house, situated on a sloping
- lawn. It had no park, but the pleasure-grounds were tolerably
- extensive; and like every other place of the same degree of importance,
- it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk, a road of smooth
- gravel winding round a plantation, led to the front, the lawn was
- dotted over with timber, the house itself was under the guardianship of
- the fir, the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of them
- altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars, shut out the
- offices.
- Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling with emotion from the
- consciousness of being only eighty miles from Barton, and not thirty
- from Combe Magna; and before she had been five minutes within its
- walls, while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show her child
- to the housekeeper, she quitted it again, stealing away through the
- winding shrubberies, now just beginning to be in beauty, to gain a
- distant eminence; where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering
- over a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly rest on
- the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon, and fancy that from their
- summits Combe Magna might be seen.
- In such moments of precious, invaluable misery, she rejoiced in tears
- of agony to be at Cleveland; and as she returned by a different circuit
- to the house, feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty, of
- wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude, she
- resolved to spend almost every hour of every day while she remained
- with the Palmers, in the indulgence of such solitary rambles.
- She returned just in time to join the others as they quitted the house,
- on an excursion through its more immediate premises; and the rest of
- the morning was easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen
- garden, examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
- gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through the
- green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants, unwarily exposed,
- and nipped by the lingering frost, raised the laughter of
- Charlotte,--and in visiting her poultry-yard, where, in the
- disappointed hopes of her dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or
- being stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising young
- brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
- The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne, in her plan of employment
- abroad, had not calculated for any change of weather during their stay
- at Cleveland. With great surprise therefore, did she find herself
- prevented by a settled rain from going out again after dinner. She had
- depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple, and perhaps all over
- the grounds, and an evening merely cold or damp would not have deterred
- her from it; but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
- or pleasant weather for walking.
- Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away. Mrs. Palmer
- had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work; they talked of the
- friends they had left behind, arranged Lady Middleton's engagements,
- and wondered whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
- than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned in it,
- joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had the knack of finding
- her way in every house to the library, however it might be avoided by
- the family in general, soon procured herself a book.
- Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant and friendly
- good humour could do, to make them feel themselves welcome. The
- openness and heartiness of her manner more than atoned for that want of
- recollection and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
- of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty a face, was
- engaging; her folly, though evident was not disgusting, because it was
- not conceited; and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
- The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very late dinner, affording
- a pleasant enlargement of the party, and a very welcome variety to
- their conversation, which a long morning of the same continued rain had
- reduced very low.
- Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that little had seen so
- much variety in his address to her sister and herself, that she knew
- not what to expect to find him in his own family. She found him,
- however, perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
- and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother; she found him
- very capable of being a pleasant companion, and only prevented from
- being so always, by too great an aptitude to fancy himself as much
- superior to people in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs.
- Jennings and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits, they
- were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive, with no traits at all
- unusual in his sex and time of life. He was nice in his eating,
- uncertain in his hours; fond of his child, though affecting to slight
- it; and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought to have been
- devoted to business. She liked him, however, upon the whole, much
- better than she had expected, and in her heart was not sorry that she
- could like him no more;--not sorry to be driven by the observation of
- his Epicurism, his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with
- complacency on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple
- taste, and diffident feelings.
- Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns, she now received
- intelligence from Colonel Brandon, who had been into Dorsetshire
- lately; and who, treating her at once as the disinterested friend of
- Mr. Ferrars, and the kind confidante of himself, talked to her a
- great deal of the parsonage at Delaford, described its deficiencies,
- and told her what he meant to do himself towards removing them.--His
- behaviour to her in this, as well as in every other particular, his
- open pleasure in meeting her after an absence of only ten days, his
- readiness to converse with her, and his deference for her opinion,
- might very well justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
- and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still, as from the
- first, believed Marianne his real favourite, to make her suspect it
- herself. But as it was, such a notion had scarcely ever entered her
- head, except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could not help
- believing herself the nicest observer of the two;--she watched his
- eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought only of his behaviour;--and while his
- looks of anxious solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and
- throat, the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
- entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could discover in
- them the quick feelings, and needless alarm of a lover.
- Two delightful twilight walks on the third and fourth evenings of her
- being there, not merely on the dry gravel of the shrubbery, but all
- over the grounds, and especially in the most distant parts of them,
- where there was something more of wildness than in the rest, where the
- trees were the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
- had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting in her wet
- shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold so violent as, though for a
- day or two trifled with or denied, would force itself by increasing
- ailments on the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
- Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual, were all
- declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain in her limbs, and a
- cough, and a sore throat, a good night's rest was to cure her entirely;
- and it was with difficulty that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went
- to bed, to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
- CHAPTER 43
- Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time; to every inquiry
- replied that she was better, and tried to prove herself so, by engaging
- in her accustomary employments. But a day spent in sitting shivering
- over the fire with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read, or
- in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak much in favour of
- her amendment; and when, at last, she went early to bed, more and more
- indisposed, Colonel Brandon was only astonished at her sister's
- composure, who, though attending and nursing her the whole day, against
- Marianne's inclination, and forcing proper medicines on her at night,
- trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty and efficacy of sleep, and
- felt no real alarm.
- A very restless and feverish night, however, disappointed the
- expectation of both; and when Marianne, after persisting in rising,
- confessed herself unable to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her
- bed, Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice, of sending
- for the Palmers' apothecary.
- He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging Miss Dashwood to
- expect that a very few days would restore her sister to health, yet, by
- pronouncing her disorder to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the
- word "infection" to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
- on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined from the
- first to think Marianne's complaint more serious than Elinor, now
- looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report, and confirming Charlotte's
- fears and caution, urged the necessity of her immediate removal with
- her infant; and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as
- idle, found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great to be
- withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on; and within an hour
- after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off, with her little boy and his
- nurse, for the house of a near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a
- few miles on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised, at
- her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two; and whither she was
- almost equally urgent with her mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings,
- however, with a kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
- declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland as long as
- Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring, by her own attentive care,
- to supply to her the place of the mother she had taken her from; and
- Elinor found her on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
- desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her better
- experience in nursing, of material use.
- Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature of her malady, and
- feeling herself universally ill, could no longer hope that tomorrow
- would find her recovered; and the idea of what tomorrow would have
- produced, but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe; for
- on that day they were to have begun their journey home; and, attended
- the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings, were to have taken their
- mother by surprise on the following forenoon. The little she said was
- all in lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried to
- raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN really believed
- herself, that it would be a very short one.
- The next day produced little or no alteration in the state of the
- patient; she certainly was not better, and, except that there was no
- amendment, did not appear worse. Their party was now farther reduced;
- for Mr. Palmer, though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
- and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be frightened away
- by his wife, was persuaded at last by Colonel Brandon to perform his
- promise of following her; and while he was preparing to go, Colonel
- Brandon himself, with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
- likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings interposed most
- acceptably; for to send the Colonel away while his love was in so much
- uneasiness on her sister's account, would be to deprive them both, she
- thought, of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once that his
- stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself, that she should want him to
- play at piquet of an evening, while Miss Dashwood was above with her
- sister, &c. she urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was
- gratifying the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
- long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's entreaty was
- warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed to feel a relief to himself,
- in leaving behind him a person so well able to assist or advise Miss
- Dashwood in any emergence.
- Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all these arrangements.
- She knew not that she had been the means of sending the owners of
- Cleveland away, in about seven days from the time of their arrival. It
- gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer; and as it
- gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned her name.
- Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure, and her
- situation continued, with little variation, the same. Mr. Harris, who
- attended her every day, still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and
- Miss Dashwood was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
- was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined very early
- in the seizure that Marianne would never get over it, and Colonel
- Brandon, who was chiefly of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's
- forebodings, was not in a state of mind to resist their influence. He
- tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different judgment of
- the apothecary seemed to render absurd; but the many hours of each day
- in which he was left entirely alone, were but too favourable for the
- admission of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from his
- mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
- On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy anticipations of
- both were almost done away; for when Mr. Harris arrived, he declared
- his patient materially better. Her pulse was much stronger, and every
- symptom more favourable than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed
- in every pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that in her
- letters to her mother, she had pursued her own judgment rather than her
- friend's, in making very light of the indisposition which delayed them
- at Cleveland; and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
- to travel.
- But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.-- Towards the
- evening Marianne became ill again, growing more heavy, restless, and
- uncomfortable than before. Her sister, however, still sanguine, was
- willing to attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue of
- having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully administering the
- cordials prescribed, saw her, with satisfaction, sink at last into a
- slumber, from which she expected the most beneficial effects. Her
- sleep, though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it, lasted a
- considerable time; and anxious to observe the result of it herself, she
- resolved to sit with her during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings,
- knowing nothing of any change in the patient, went unusually early to
- bed; her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
- herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained alone with
- Marianne.
- The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed; and her
- sister, who watched, with unremitting attention her continual change of
- posture, and heard the frequent but inarticulate sounds of complaint
- which passed her lips, was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful
- a slumber, when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise in
- the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness, cried out,--
- "Is mama coming?--"
- "Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror, and assisting
- Marianne to lie down again, "but she will be here, I hope, before it is
- long. It is a great way, you know, from hence to Barton."
- "But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne, in the same
- hurried manner. "I shall never see her, if she goes by London."
- Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not quite herself, and, while
- attempting to soothe her, eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and
- quicker than ever! and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her
- alarm increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending instantly
- for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger to Barton for her mother.
- To consult with Colonel Brandon on the best means of effecting the
- latter, was a thought which immediately followed the resolution of its
- performance; and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place by
- her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room, where she knew he
- was generally to be found at a much later hour than the present.
- It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her difficulties were
- immediately before him. Her fears, he had no courage, no confidence to
- attempt the removal of:--he listened to them in silent despondence;--but
- her difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness that
- seemed to speak the occasion, and the service pre-arranged in his mind,
- he offered himself as the messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood.
- Elinor made no resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
- with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went to hurry off his
- servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and an order for post-horses
- directly, she wrote a few lines to her mother.
- The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel Brandon--or such
- a companion for her mother,--how gratefully was it felt!--a companion
- whose judgment would guide, whose attendance must relieve, and whose
- friendship might soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons
- COULD be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
- would lessen it.
- HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all the firmness of a
- collected mind, made every necessary arrangement with the utmost
- despatch, and calculated with exactness the time in which she might
- look for his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind. The
- horses arrived, even before they were expected, and Colonel Brandon
- only pressing her hand with a look of solemnity, and a few words spoken
- too low to reach her ear, hurried into the carriage. It was then about
- twelve o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait for
- the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her the rest of the
- night. It was a night of almost equal suffering to both. Hour after
- hour passed away in sleepless pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and
- in the most cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared. Her
- apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all her former
- security; and the servant who sat up with her, for she would not allow
- Mrs. Jennings to be called, only tortured her more, by hints of what
- her mistress had always thought.
- Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals, fixed incoherently on her
- mother, and whenever she mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the
- heart of poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled with
- so many days of illness, and wretched for some immediate relief,
- fancied that all relief might soon be in vain, that every thing had
- been delayed too long, and pictured to herself her suffering mother
- arriving too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
- She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris, or if HE could
- not come, for some other advice, when the former--but not till after
- five o'clock--arrived. His opinion, however, made some little amends
- for his delay, for though acknowledging a very unexpected and
- unpleasant alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger to
- be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh mode of treatment
- must procure, with a confidence which, in a lesser degree, was
- communicated to Elinor. He promised to call again in the course of
- three or four hours, and left both the patient and her anxious
- attendant more composed than he had found them.
- With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not being called to
- their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the morning of what had passed.
- Her former apprehensions, now with greater reason restored, left her no
- doubt of the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor, her
- conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her to offer the
- comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved. The rapid decay, the
- early death of a girl so young, so lovely as Marianne, must have struck
- a less interested person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
- she had other claims. She had been for three months her companion, was
- still under her care, and she was known to have been greatly injured,
- and long unhappy. The distress of her sister too, particularly a
- favourite, was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
- considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what Charlotte was to
- herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings was very sincere.
- Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--but he came to be
- disappointed in his hopes of what the last would produce. His
- medicines had failed;--the fever was unabated; and Marianne only more
- quiet--not more herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching
- all, and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call in
- further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had still something
- more to try, some more fresh application, of whose success he was as
- confident as the last, and his visit concluded with encouraging
- assurances which reached the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss
- Dashwood. She was calm, except when she thought of her mother; but she
- was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued till noon,
- scarcely stirring from her sister's bed, her thoughts wandering from
- one image of grief, one suffering friend to another, and her spirits
- oppressed to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings, who
- scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger of this attack to the
- many weeks of previous indisposition which Marianne's disappointment
- had brought on. Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
- gave fresh misery to her reflections.
- About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a dread of
- disappointment which for some time kept her silent, even to her
- friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive a slight amendment in her
- sister's pulse;--she waited, watched, and examined it again and
- again;--and at last, with an agitation more difficult to bury under
- exterior calmness, than all her foregoing distress, ventured to
- communicate her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
- to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her young friend from
- indulging a thought of its continuance;--and Elinor, conning over every
- injunction of distrust, told herself likewise not to hope. But it was
- too late. Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious
- flutter, she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
- Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom yet blessed her.
- Others even arose to confirm it. Her breath, her skin, her lips, all
- flattered Elinor with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes
- on her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and hope now
- oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no moment of tranquillity
- till the arrival of Mr. Harris at four o'clock;--when his assurances,
- his felicitations on a recovery in her sister even surpassing his
- expectation, gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
- Marianne was in every respect materially better, and he declared her
- entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings, perhaps satisfied with the
- partial justification of her forebodings which had been found in their
- late alarm, allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
- with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness, the
- probability of an entire recovery.
- Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a different kind, and led
- to any thing rather than to gaiety. Marianne restored to life, health,
- friends, and to her doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with
- sensations of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent
- gratitude;--but it led to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
- no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction, silent and
- strong.
- She continued by the side of her sister, with little intermission the
- whole afternoon, calming every fear, satisfying every inquiry of her
- enfeebled spirits, supplying every succour, and watching almost every
- look and every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
- in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--but when she
- saw, on her frequent and minute examination, that every symptom of
- recovery continued, and saw Marianne at six o'clock sink into a quiet,
- steady, and to all appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every
- doubt.
- The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon might be expected
- back. At ten o'clock, she trusted, or at least not much later her
- mother would be relieved from the dreadful suspense in which she must
- now be travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
- less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress of time which
- yet kept them in ignorance!
- At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep, she joined
- Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea. Of breakfast she had been
- kept by her fears, and of dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating
- much;--and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings of
- content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome. Mrs. Jennings
- would have persuaded her, at its conclusion, to take some rest before
- her mother's arrival, and allow HER to take her place by Marianne; but
- Elinor had no sense of fatigue, no capability of sleep at that moment
- about her, and she was not to be kept away from her sister an
- unnecessary instant. Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs
- into the sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
- left her there again to her charge and her thoughts, and retired to her
- own room to write letters and sleep.
- The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared round the house, and
- the rain beat against the windows; but Elinor, all happiness within,
- regarded it not. Marianne slept through every blast; and the
- travellers--they had a rich reward in store, for every present
- inconvenience.
- The clock struck eight. Had it been ten, Elinor would have been
- convinced that at that moment she heard a carriage driving up to the
- house; and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite of the
- ALMOST impossibility of their being already come, that she moved into
- the adjoining dressing-closet and opened a window shutter, to be
- satisfied of the truth. She instantly saw that her ears had not
- deceived her. The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in
- view. By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it to be
- drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the excess of her poor
- mother's alarm, gave some explanation to such unexpected rapidity.
- Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult to be calm, as at
- that moment. The knowledge of what her mother must be feeling as the
- carriage stopt at the door--of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her
- despair!--and of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
- impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done was to be speedy;
- and, therefore staying only till she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid
- with her sister, she hurried down stairs.
- The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along an inner lobby,
- assured her that they were already in the house. She rushed to the
- drawing-room,--she entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
- CHAPTER 44
- Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at the sight of him, obeyed
- the first impulse of her heart in turning instantly to quit the room,
- and her hand was already on the lock, when its action was suspended by
- his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather of command than
- supplication,
- "Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--I entreat you to
- stay."
- "No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay. Your business
- cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose, forgot to tell you that
- Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
- "Had they told me," he cried with vehemence, "that Mr. Palmer and all
- his relations were at the devil, it would not have turned me from the
- door. My business is with you, and only you."
- "With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--be quick--and if you
- can--less violent."
- "Sit down, and I will be both."
- She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility of Colonel
- Brandon's arriving and finding her there, came across her. But she had
- promised to hear him, and her curiosity no less than her honor was
- engaged. After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
- prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would best
- promote it, she walked silently towards the table, and sat down. He
- took the opposite chair, and for half a minute not a word was said by
- either.
- "Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--"I have no time to
- spare."
- He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation, and seemed not to
- hear her.
- "Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment afterwards--"is out
- of danger. I heard it from the servant. God be praised!--But is it
- true? is it really true?"
- Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry with yet greater
- eagerness.
- "For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger, or is she not?"
- "We hope she is."
- He rose up, and walked across the room.
- "Had I known as much half an hour ago--But since I AM here,"--speaking
- with a forced vivacity as he returned to his seat--"what does it
- signify?--For once, Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time,
- perhaps--let us be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for
- gaiety.-- Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his
- cheeks--"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
- Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever. She began to
- think that he must be in liquor;--the strangeness of such a visit, and
- of such manners, seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this
- impression she immediately rose, saying,
- "Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return to Combe--I am not
- at leisure to remain with you longer.-- Whatever your business may be
- with me, it will be better recollected and explained to-morrow."
- "I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile, and a voice
- perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.-- A pint of porter with my cold
- beef at Marlborough was enough to over-set me."
- "At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at a loss to understand
- what he would be at.
- "Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock, and the only ten
- minutes I have spent out of my chaise since that time procured me a
- nuncheon at Marlborough."
- The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence of his eye as he
- spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever other unpardonable folly might
- bring him to Cleveland, he was not brought there by intoxication, she
- said, after a moment's recollection,
- "Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly DO--that after what
- has passed--your coming here in this manner, and forcing yourself upon
- my notice, requires a very particular excuse.--What is it, that you
- mean by it?"--
- "I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can, to make you hate me
- one degree less than you do NOW. I mean to offer some kind of
- explanation, some kind of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart
- to you, and by convincing you, that though I have been always a
- blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain something like
- forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
- "Is this the real reason of your coming?"
- "Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth which brought all
- the former Willoughby to her remembrance, and in spite of herself made
- her think him sincere.
- "If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--for Marianne DOES--she
- has LONG forgiven you."
- "Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.-- "Then she has forgiven
- me before she ought to have done it. But she shall forgive me again,
- and on more reasonable grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
- Elinor bowed her assent.
- "I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation on her side, and
- thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU may have accounted for my
- behaviour to your sister, or what diabolical motive you may have
- imputed to me.-- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
- worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing. When I first
- became intimate in your family, I had no other intention, no other view
- in the acquaintance than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged
- to remain in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
- Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners could not but
- please me; and her behaviour to me almost from the first, was of a
- kind--It is astonishing, when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE
- was, that my heart should have been so insensible! But at first I must
- confess, my vanity only was elevated by it. Careless of her happiness,
- thinking only of my own amusement, giving way to feelings which I had
- always been too much in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every
- means in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any design
- of returning her affection."
- Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him with the most
- angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
- "It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby, for you to relate, or for me
- to listen any longer. Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by
- any thing.-- Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on the
- subject."
- "I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied, "My fortune was
- never large, and I had always been expensive, always in the habit of
- associating with people of better income than myself. Every year since
- my coming of age, or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and
- though the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free; yet
- that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant, it had been for
- some time my intention to re-establish my circumstances by marrying a
- woman of fortune. To attach myself to your sister, therefore, was not
- a thing to be thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness,
- cruelty--which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours, Miss
- Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting in this manner,
- trying to engage her regard, without a thought of returning it.--But
- one thing may be said for me: even in that horrid state of selfish
- vanity, I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated, because I
- did not THEN know what it was to love. But have I ever known it?--Well
- may it be doubted; for, had I really loved, could I have sacrificed my
- feelings to vanity, to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have
- sacrificed hers?-- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
- which her affection and her society would have deprived of all its
- horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence, lost every thing that
- could make it a blessing."
- "You did then," said Elinor, a little softened, "believe yourself at
- one time attached to her?"
- "To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood such
- tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have done it?--Yes, I
- found myself, by insensible degrees, sincerely fond of her; and the
- happiest hours of my life were what I spent with her when I felt my
- intentions were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless. Even
- THEN, however, when fully determined on paying my addresses to her, I
- allowed myself most improperly to put off, from day to day, the moment
- of doing it, from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement while my
- circumstances were so greatly embarrassed. I will not reason here--nor
- will I stop for YOU to expatiate on the absurdity, and the worse than
- absurdity, of scrupling to engage my faith where my honour was already
- bound. The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool, providing with
- great circumspection for a possible opportunity of making myself
- contemptible and wretched for ever. At last, however, my resolution
- was taken, and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
- to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her, and openly
- assure her of an affection which I had already taken such pains to
- display. But in the interim--in the interim of the very few hours that
- were to pass, before I could have an opportunity of speaking with her
- in private--a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
- all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery took
- place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith had somehow or
- other been informed, I imagine by some distant relation, whose interest
- it was to deprive me of her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I
- need not explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
- heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular intimacy--you
- have probably heard the whole story long ago."
- "I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise, and hardening her heart
- anew against any compassion for him, "I have heard it all. And how you
- will explain away any part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I
- confess is beyond my comprehension."
- "Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received the account.
- Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge that her situation and her
- character ought to have been respected by me. I do not mean to justify
- myself, but at the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have
- nothing to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
- and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint. If the violence of
- her passions, the weakness of her understanding--I do not mean,
- however, to defend myself. Her affection for me deserved better
- treatment, and I often, with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness
- which, for a very short time, had the power of creating any return. I
- wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured more than
- herself; and I have injured one, whose affection for me--(may I say
- it?) was scarcely less warm than hers; and whose mind--Oh! how
- infinitely superior!"--
- "Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate girl--I must say
- it, unpleasant to me as the discussion of such a subject may well
- be--your indifference is no apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do
- not think yourself excused by any weakness, any natural defect of
- understanding on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
- You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself in
- Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay, always happy, she was
- reduced to the extremest indigence."
- "But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly replied; "I did not
- recollect that I had omitted to give her my direction; and common sense
- might have told her how to find it out."
- "Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
- "She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion may be
- guessed. The purity of her life, the formality of her notions, her
- ignorance of the world--every thing was against me. The matter itself
- I could not deny, and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
- previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my conduct in
- general, and was moreover discontented with the very little attention,
- the very little portion of my time that I had bestowed on her, in my
- present visit. In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
- might have saved myself. In the height of her morality, good woman!
- she offered to forgive the past, if I would marry Eliza. That could
- not be--and I was formally dismissed from her favour and her house.
- The night following this affair--I was to go the next morning--was
- spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct should be. The
- struggle was great--but it ended too soon. My affection for Marianne,
- my thorough conviction of her attachment to me--it was all insufficient
- to outweigh that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
- ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally inclined to
- feel, and expensive society had increased. I had reason to believe
- myself secure of my present wife, if I chose to address her, and I
- persuaded myself to think that nothing else in common prudence remained
- for me to do. A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
- Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day; some
- apology was therefore necessary for my breaking this engagement. But
- whether I should write this apology, or deliver it in person, was a
- point of long debate. To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and
- I even doubted whether I could see her again, and keep to my
- resolution. In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
- as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw her miserable,
- and left her miserable--and left her hoping never to see her again."
- "Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor, reproachfully; "a note
- would have answered every purpose.-- Why was it necessary to call?"
- "It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear to leave the
- country in a manner that might lead you, or the rest of the
- neighbourhood, to suspect any part of what had really passed between
- Mrs. Smith and myself--and I resolved therefore on calling at the
- cottage, in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister, however,
- was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter, I found her alone.
- You were all gone I do not know where. I had left her only the evening
- before, so fully, so firmly resolved within my self on doing right! A
- few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever; and I remember how
- happy, how gay were my spirits, as I walked from the cottage to
- Allenham, satisfied with myself, delighted with every body! But in
- this, our last interview of friendship, I approached her with a sense
- of guilt that almost took from me the power of dissembling. Her
- sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told her that I was
- obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I never shall forget
- it--united too with such reliance, such confidence in me!--Oh,
- God!--what a hard-hearted rascal I was!"
- They were both silent for a few moments. Elinor first spoke.
- "Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
- "I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently; "less than
- was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all likelihood much more
- than was justified by the future. I cannot think of it.--It won't
- do.--Then came your dear mother to torture me farther, with all her
- kindness and confidence. Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was
- miserable. Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
- gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge to myself
- for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart, that all my past
- sufferings under it are only triumph and exultation to me now. Well, I
- went, left all that I loved, and went to those to whom, at best, I was
- only indifferent. My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
- and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my own reflections
- so cheerful--when I looked forward every thing so inviting!--when I
- looked back at Barton, the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed
- journey!"
- He stopped.
- "Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him, grew impatient for
- his departure, "and this is all?"
- "Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?-- That infamous
- letter--Did she shew it you?"
- "Yes, I saw every note that passed."
- "When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did, for I was in
- town the whole time,) what I felt is--in the common phrase, not to be
- expressed; in a more simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any
- emotion--my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
- was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer, were she here,
- would forbid--a dagger to my heart. To know that Marianne was in town
- was--in the same language--a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and
- daggers!--what a reproof would she have given me!--her taste, her
- opinions--I believe they are better known to me than my own,--and I am
- sure they are dearer."
- Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes in the course of this
- extraordinary conversation, was now softened again;--yet she felt it
- her duty to check such ideas in her companion as the last.
- "This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that you are married.
- Relate only what in your conscience you think necessary for me to hear."
- "Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still as dear to her as in
- former days, that in spite of the many, many weeks we had been
- separated, she was as constant in her own feelings, and as full of
- faith in the constancy of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say
- awakened, because time and London, business and dissipation, had in
- some measure quieted it, and I had been growing a fine hardened
- villain, fancying myself indifferent to her, and chusing to fancy that
- she too must have become indifferent to me; talking to myself of our
- past attachment as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my
- shoulders in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
- overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then, 'I shall be
- heartily glad to hear she is well married.'-- But this note made me
- know myself better. I felt that she was infinitely dearer to me than
- any other woman in the world, and that I was using her infamously. But
- every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey and me. To retreat
- was impossible. All that I had to do, was to avoid you both. I sent
- no answer to Marianne, intending by that to preserve myself from her
- farther notice; and for some time I was even determined not to call in
- Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect the air of a
- cool, common acquaintance than anything else, I watched you all safely
- out of the house one morning, and left my name."
- "Watched us out of the house!"
- "Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often I watched you, how
- often I was on the point of falling in with you. I have entered many a
- shop to avoid your sight, as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did
- in Bond Street, there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a
- glimpse of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
- watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing desire to keep
- out of your sight, could have separated us so long. I avoided the
- Middletons as much as possible, as well as everybody else who was
- likely to prove an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being in
- town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe, the first day of his
- coming, and the day after I had called at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me
- to a party, a dance at his house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as
- an inducement that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
- felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him. The next
- morning brought another short note from Marianne--still affectionate,
- open, artless, confiding--everything that could make MY conduct most
- hateful. I could not answer it. I tried--but could not frame a
- sentence. But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
- If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it was THEN.
- With my head and heart full of your sister, I was forced to play the
- happy lover to another woman!--Those three or four weeks were worse
- than all. Well, at last, as I need not tell you, you were forced on
- me; and what a sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
- Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me Willoughby in
- such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand to me, asking me for an
- explanation, with those bewitching eyes fixed in such speaking
- solicitude on my face!--and Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other
- hand, looking all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over
- now.-- Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
- but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white as
- death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--the last
- manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid sight!--yet when I
- thought of her to-day as really dying, it was a kind of comfort to me
- to imagine that I knew exactly how she would appear to those, who saw
- her last in this world. She was before me, constantly before me, as I
- travelled, in the same look and hue."
- A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded. Willoughby first
- rousing himself, broke it thus:
- "Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister is certainly better,
- certainly out of danger?"
- "We are assured of it."
- "Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
- "But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter; have you any thing to
- say about that?"
- "Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister wrote to me again, you
- know, the very next morning. You saw what she said. I was
- breakfasting at the Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was
- brought to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch Sophia's
- eye before it caught mine--and its size, the elegance of the paper, the
- hand-writing altogether, immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague
- report had reached her before of my attachment to some young lady in
- Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation the preceding
- evening had marked who the young lady was, and made her more jealous
- than ever. Affecting that air of playfulness, therefore, which is
- delightful in a woman one loves, she opened the letter directly,
- and read its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
- She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could have
- borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it must be appeased.
- And, in short--what do you think of my wife's style of
- letter-writing?--delicate--tender--truly feminine--was it not?"
- "Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
- "Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying such sentences as
- I was ashamed to put my name to. The original was all her own--her own
- happy thoughts and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were
- engaged, every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
- talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words, her money
- was necessary to me, and in a situation like mine, any thing was to be
- done to prevent a rupture. And after all, what did it signify to my
- character in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
- my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end. My business
- was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether I did it with a bow or a
- bluster was of little importance.-- 'I am ruined for ever in their
- opinion--' said I to myself--'I am shut out for ever from their
- society, they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter will
- only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were my reasonings, as,
- in a sort of desperate carelessness, I copied my wife's words, and
- parted with the last relics of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily
- they were all in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their
- existence, and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up, and
- could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too I had always
- carried about me in the same pocket-book, which was now searched by
- Madam with the most ingratiating virulence,--the dear lock--all, every
- memento was torn from me."
- "You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable," said Elinor, while
- her voice, in spite of herself, betrayed her compassionate emotion;
- "you ought not to speak in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my
- sister. You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you. Your
- wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect, at least. She
- must be attached to you, or she would not have married you. To treat
- her with unkindness, to speak of her slightingly is no atonement to
- Marianne--nor can I suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
- "Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.-- "She does
- not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no regard for her when we
- married.--Well, married we were, and came down to Combe Magna to be
- happy, and afterwards returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity
- me, Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?-- Am I--be
- it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion than I was
- before?--My intentions were not always wrong. Have I explained away
- any part of my guilt?"
- "Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.-- You have proved
- yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I had believed you. You have
- proved your heart less wicked, much less wicked. But I hardly
- know--the misery that you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have
- made it worse."
- "Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered, what I have been
- telling you?--Let me be a little lightened too in her opinion as well
- as in yours. You tell me that she has forgiven me already. Let me be
- able to fancy that a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present
- feelings, will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
- gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery and my
- penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant to her, and if
- you will, that at this moment she is dearer to me than ever."
- "I will tell her all that is necessary to what may comparatively be
- called, your justification. But you have not explained to me the
- particular reason of your coming now, nor how you heard of her illness."
- "Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir John Middleton, and
- when he saw who I was--for the first time these two months--he spoke to
- me.--That he had cut me ever since my marriage, I had seen without
- surprise or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest, stupid
- soul, full of indignation against me, and concern for your sister,
- could not resist the temptation of telling me what he knew ought
- to--though probably he did not think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As
- bluntly as he could speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne
- Dashwood was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
- morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger most
- imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright, &c.--I was too much
- shocked to be able to pass myself off as insensible even to the
- undiscerning Sir John. His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer;
- and so much of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted, he
- almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an old promise
- about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing that your sister was
- dying--and dying too, believing me the greatest villain upon earth,
- scorning, hating me in her latest moments--for how could I tell what
- horrid projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I was sure
- would represent me as capable of any thing-- What I felt was
- dreadful!--My resolution was soon made, and at eight o'clock this
- morning I was in my carriage. Now you know all."
- Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed on the
- irreparable injury which too early an independence and its consequent
- habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury, had made in the mind, the
- character, the happiness, of a man who, to every advantage of person
- and talents, united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
- feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him extravagant and
- vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him cold-hearted and selfish.
- Vanity, while seeking its own guilty triumph at the expense of another,
- had involved him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
- its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed. Each faulty
- propensity in leading him to evil, had led him likewise to punishment.
- The attachment, from which against honour, against feeling, against
- every better interest he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no
- longer allowable, governed every thought; and the connection, for the
- sake of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister to misery,
- was likely to prove a source of unhappiness to himself of a far more
- incurable nature. From a reverie of this kind she was recalled at the
- end of some minutes by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie
- at least equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and
- said--
- "There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
- "Are you going back to town?"
- "No--to Combe Magna. I have business there; from thence to town in a
- day or two. Good bye."
- He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give him hers;--he
- pressed it with affection.
- "And you DO think something better of me than you did?"--said he,
- letting it fall, and leaning against the mantel-piece as if forgetting
- he was to go.
- Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave, pitied, wished him
- well--was even interested in his happiness--and added some gentle
- counsel as to the behaviour most likely to promote it. His answer was
- not very encouraging.
- "As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world as well as I can.
- Domestic happiness is out of the question. If, however, I am allowed
- to think that you and yours feel an interest in my fate and actions, it
- may be the means--it may put me on my guard--at least, it may be
- something to live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
- Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
- Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
- "Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall now go away and live
- in dread of one event."
- "What do you mean?"
- "Your sister's marriage."
- "You are very wrong. She can never be more lost to you than she is
- now."
- "But she will be gained by some one else. And if that some one should
- be the very he whom, of all others, I could least bear--but I will not
- stay to rob myself of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing that
- where I have most injured I can least forgive. Good bye,--God bless
- you!"
- And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
- CHAPTER 45
- Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time even after the
- sound of his carriage had died away, remained too much oppressed by a
- crowd of ideas, widely differing in themselves, but of which sadness
- was the general result, to think even of her sister.
- Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had abhorred as the most
- worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite of all his faults, excited a
- degree of commiseration for the sufferings produced by them, which made
- her think of him as now separated for ever from her family, with a
- tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she soon acknowledged
- within herself--to his wishes than to his merits. She felt that his
- influence over her mind was heightened by circumstances which ought not
- in reason to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction, that
- open, affectionate, and lively manner which it was no merit to possess;
- and by that still ardent love for Marianne, which it was not even
- innocent to indulge. But she felt that it was so, long, long before
- she could feel his influence less.
- When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne, she found her
- just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet a sleep to the extent of
- her hopes. Elinor's heart was full. The past, the present, the
- future, Willoughby's visit, Marianne's safety, and her mother's
- expected arrival, threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
- which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made her only fearful
- of betraying herself to her sister. Short was the time, however, in
- which that fear could affect her, for within half an hour after
- Willoughby's leaving the house, she was again called down stairs by the
- sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her mother from every
- unnecessary moment's horrible suspense, she ran immediately into the
- hall, and reached the outward door just in time to receive and support
- her as she entered it.
- Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the house had produced
- almost the conviction of Marianne's being no more, had no voice to
- inquire after her, no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither
- for salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--and her
- mother, catching it with all her usual warmth, was in a moment as much
- overcome by her happiness, as she had been before by her fears. She
- was supported into the drawing-room between her daughter and her
- friend;--and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable to
- speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her at intervals
- to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look which spoke at once her
- gratitude, and her conviction of his sharing with herself in the bliss
- of the moment. He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
- her own.
- As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself, to see Marianne was her
- first desire; and in two minutes she was with her beloved child,
- rendered dearer to her than ever by absence, unhappiness, and danger.
- Elinor's delight, as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only
- checked by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther
- sleep;--but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent, when
- the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne, satisfied in knowing
- her mother was near her, and conscious of being too weak for
- conversation, submitted readily to the silence and quiet prescribed by
- every nurse around her. Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night;
- and Elinor, in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed. But
- the rest, which one night entirely sleepless, and many hours of the
- most wearing anxiety seemed to make requisite, was kept off by
- irritation of spirits. Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now
- allowed herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she would
- not but have heard his vindication for the world, and now blamed, now
- acquitted herself for having judged him so harshly before. But her
- promise of relating it to her sister was invariably painful. She
- dreaded the performance of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne
- might be; doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever be
- happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby a widower.
- Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself, felt that to HIS
- sufferings and his constancy far more than to his rival's, the reward
- of her sister was due, and wished any thing rather than Mrs.
- Willoughby's death.
- The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been much softened
- to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm; for so great was her
- uneasiness about Marianne, that she had already determined to set out
- for Cleveland on that very day, without waiting for any further
- intelligence, and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
- that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch Margaret away,
- as her mother was unwilling to take her where there might be infection.
- Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant cheerfulness of
- Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved her to be, as she repeatedly
- declared herself, one of the happiest women in the world. Elinor could
- not hear the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
- wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward. But Mrs.
- Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account of her own disappointment
- which Elinor had sent her, was led away by the exuberance of her joy to
- think only of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
- from a danger in which, as she now began to feel, her own mistaken
- judgment in encouraging the unfortunate attachment to Willoughby, had
- contributed to place her;--and in her recovery she had yet another
- source of joy unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her, as
- soon as any opportunity of private conference between them occurred.
- "At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet know all my
- happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne. He has told me so himself."
- Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained, surprised and
- not surprised, was all silent attention.
- "You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should wonder at your
- composure now. Had I sat down to wish for any possible good to my
- family, I should have fixed on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as
- the object most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
- happy with him of the two."
- Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so, because
- satisfied that none founded on an impartial consideration of their age,
- characters, or feelings, could be given;--but her mother must always be
- carried away by her imagination on any interesting subject, and
- therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
- "He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled. It came
- out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may well believe, could
- talk of nothing but my child;--he could not conceal his distress; I saw
- that it equalled my own, and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship,
- as the world now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
- not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible feelings,
- made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant, affection for
- Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since the first moment of
- seeing her."
- Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language, not the professions
- of Colonel Brandon, but the natural embellishments of her mother's
- active fancy, which fashioned every thing delightful to her as it chose.
- "His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything that Willoughby
- ever felt or feigned, as much more warm, as more sincere or
- constant--which ever we are to call it--has subsisted through all the
- knowledge of dear Marianne's unhappy prepossession for that worthless
- young man!--and without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
- he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--such openness,
- such sincerity!--no one can be deceived in HIM."
- "Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor, "as an excellent man, is
- well established."
- "I know it is,"--replied her mother seriously, "or after such a warning,
- I should be the last to encourage such affection, or even to be pleased
- by it. But his coming for me as he did, with such active, such ready
- friendship, is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
- "His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest on ONE act of
- kindness, to which his affection for Marianne, were humanity out of the
- case, would have prompted him. To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he
- has been long and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
- and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired, is very
- considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him, that if Marianne
- can be happy with him, I shall be as ready as yourself to think our
- connection the greatest blessing to us in the world. What answer did
- you give him?--Did you allow him to hope?"
- "Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him or to myself.
- Marianne might at that moment be dying. But he did not ask for hope or
- encouragement. His was an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible
- effusion to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent. Yet
- after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite overcome--that if she
- lived, as I trusted she might, my greatest happiness would lie in
- promoting their marriage; and since our arrival, since our delightful
- security, I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
- encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time, I tell him, will
- do everything;--Marianne's heart is not to be wasted for ever on such a
- man as Willoughby.-- His own merits must soon secure it."
- "To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however, you have not yet made
- him equally sanguine."
- "No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply rooted for any change
- in it under a great length of time, and even supposing her heart again
- free, is too diffident of himself to believe, that with such a
- difference of age and disposition he could ever attach her. There,
- however, he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond hers as
- to be an advantage, as to make his character and principles fixed;--and
- his disposition, I am well convinced, is exactly the very one to make
- your sister happy. And his person, his manners too, are all in his
- favour. My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not so
- handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time, there is something much
- more pleasing in his countenance.-- There was always a something,--if
- you remember,--in Willoughby's eyes at times, which I did not like."
- Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother, without waiting for her
- assent, continued,
- "And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only more pleasing to
- me than Willoughby's ever were, but they are of a kind I well know to
- be more solidly attaching to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine
- attention to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity is much
- more accordant with her real disposition, than the liveliness--often
- artificial, and often ill-timed of the other. I am very sure myself,
- that had Willoughby turned out as really amiable, as he has proved
- himself the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy with
- HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
- She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree with her, but her
- dissent was not heard, and therefore gave no offence.
- "At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me," added Mrs.
- Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all probability,--for I
- hear it is a large village,--indeed there certainly MUST be some small
- house or cottage close by, that would suit us quite as well as our
- present situation."
- Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting her to Delaford!--but
- her spirit was stubborn.
- "His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know, everybody cares
- about THAT;--and though I neither know nor desire to know, what it
- really is, I am sure it must be a good one."
- Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a third person, and
- Elinor withdrew to think it all over in private, to wish success to her
- friend, and yet in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
- CHAPTER 46
- Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind, had not been long
- enough to make her recovery slow; and with youth, natural strength, and
- her mother's presence in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her
- to remove, within four days after the arrival of the latter, into Mrs.
- Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own particular request, for
- she was impatient to pour forth her thanks to him for fetching her
- mother, Colonel Brandon was invited to visit her.
- His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered looks, and in
- receiving the pale hand which she immediately held out to him, was
- such, as, in Elinor's conjecture, must arise from something more than
- his affection for Marianne, or the consciousness of its being known to
- others; and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
- complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable recurrence of many
- past scenes of misery to his mind, brought back by that resemblance
- between Marianne and Eliza already acknowledged, and now strengthened
- by the hollow eye, the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
- and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
- Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than her daughter, but
- with a mind very differently influenced, and therefore watching to very
- different effect, saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
- from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in the actions
- and words of Marianne she persuaded herself to think that something
- more than gratitude already dawned.
- At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing visibly stronger
- every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood, urged equally by her own and her
- daughter's wishes, began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER
- measures depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could not
- quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel Brandon was soon
- brought, by their united request, to consider his own abode there as
- equally determinate, if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs.
- Jennings's united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed on to
- accept the use of his carriage on her journey back, for the better
- accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel, at the joint
- invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings, whose active good-nature
- made her friendly and hospitable for other people as well as herself,
- engaged with pleasure to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the
- course of a few weeks.
- The day of separation and departure arrived; and Marianne, after taking
- so particular and lengthened a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly
- grateful, so full of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own
- heart from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
- Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend, was carefully
- assisted by him into the carriage, of which he seemed anxious that she
- should engross at least half. Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed,
- and the others were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers, and
- feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned to her chaise
- to take comfort in the gossip of her maid for the loss of her two young
- companions; and Colonel Brandon immediately afterwards took his
- solitary way to Delaford.
- The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne bore her journey
- on both, without essential fatigue. Every thing that the most zealous
- affection, the most solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
- was the office of each watchful companion, and each found their reward
- in her bodily ease, and her calmness of spirits. To Elinor, the
- observation of the latter was particularly grateful. She, who had seen
- her week after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish of
- heart which she had neither courage to speak of, nor fortitude to
- conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other could equally share, an
- apparent composure of mind, which, in being the result as she trusted
- of serious reflection, must eventually lead her to contentment and
- cheerfulness.
- As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered on scenes of which every
- field and every tree brought some peculiar, some painful recollection,
- she grew silent and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their
- notice, sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here, Elinor
- could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw, as she assisted
- Marianne from the carriage, that she had been crying, she saw only an
- emotion too natural in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
- and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the whole of her
- subsequent manner, she traced the direction of a mind awakened to
- reasonable exertion; for no sooner had they entered their common
- sitting-room, than Marianne turned her eyes around it with a look of
- resolute firmness, as if determined at once to accustom herself to the
- sight of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could be
- connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed at cheerfulness,
- and though a sigh sometimes escaped her, it never passed away without
- the atonement of a smile. After dinner she would try her piano-forte.
- She went to it; but the music on which her eye first rested was an
- opera, procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
- favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name in his
- hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head, put the music
- aside, and after running over the keys for a minute, complained of
- feebleness in her fingers, and closed the instrument again; declaring
- however with firmness as she did so, that she should in future practice
- much.
- The next morning produced no abatement in these happy symptoms. On the
- contrary, with a mind and body alike strengthened by rest, she looked
- and spoke with more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
- Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party which would
- then be restored, of their mutual pursuits and cheerful society, as the
- only happiness worth a wish.
- "When the weather is settled, and I have recovered my strength," said
- she, "we will take long walks together every day. We will walk to the
- farm at the edge of the down, and see how the children go on; we will
- walk to Sir John's new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
- and we will often go to the old ruins of the Priory, and try to trace its
- foundations as far as we are told they once reached. I know we shall
- be happy. I know the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to
- be later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner I shall
- divide every moment between music and reading. I have formed my plan,
- and am determined to enter on a course of serious study. Our own
- library is too well known to me, to be resorted to for any thing beyond
- mere amusement. But there are many works well worth reading at the
- Park; and there are others of more modern production which I know I can
- borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six hours a-day, I shall
- gain in the course of a twelve-month a great deal of instruction which
- I now feel myself to want."
- Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated so nobly as this;
- though smiling to see the same eager fancy which had been leading her
- to the extreme of languid indolence and selfish repining, now at work
- in introducing excess into a scheme of such rational employment and
- virtuous self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
- remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled, and feared
- she had that to communicate which might again unsettle the mind of
- Marianne, and ruin at least for a time this fair prospect of busy
- tranquillity. Willing therefore to delay the evil hour, she resolved
- to wait till her sister's health were more secure, before she appointed
- it. But the resolution was made only to be broken.
- Marianne had been two or three days at home, before the weather was
- fine enough for an invalid like herself to venture out. But at last a
- soft, genial morning appeared; such as might tempt the daughter's
- wishes and the mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's
- arm, was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue, in
- the lane before the house.
- The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness of Marianne in an
- exercise hitherto untried since her illness required;--and they had
- advanced only so far beyond the house as to admit a full view of the
- hill, the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes turned
- towards it, Marianne calmly said,
- "There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand, "on that projecting
- mound,--there I fell; and there I first saw Willoughby."
- Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving she added,
- "I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain on the
- spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--hesitatingly it
- was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk of it now, I hope, as I
- ought to do."--
- Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
- "As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that, as far as HE is
- concerned. I do not mean to talk to you of what my feelings have been
- for him, but what they are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on
- one point, if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS acting
- a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all, if I could be assured
- that he never was so VERY wicked as my fears have sometimes fancied
- him, since the story of that unfortunate girl"--
- She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words as she answered,
- "If you could be assured of that, you think you should be easy."
- "Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--for not only is it
- horrible to suspect a person, who has been what HE has been to ME, of
- such designs,--but what must it make me appear to myself?--What in a
- situation like mine, but a most shamefully unguarded affection could
- expose me to"--
- "How then," asked her sister, "would you account for his behaviour?"
- "I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose him, only fickle,
- very, very fickle."
- Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself on the
- eligibility of beginning her story directly, or postponing it till
- Marianne were in stronger health;--and they crept on for a few minutes
- in silence.
- "I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne at last with a
- sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections may be no more unpleasant
- than my own. He will suffer enough in them."
- "Do you compare your conduct with his?"
- "No. I compare it with what it ought to have been; I compare it with
- yours."
- "Our situations have borne little resemblance."
- "They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not, my dearest Elinor, let
- your kindness defend what I know your judgment must censure. My
- illness has made me think-- It has given me leisure and calmness for
- serious recollection. Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I
- was perfectly able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my own
- behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance with him last
- autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence towards myself, and want of
- kindness to others. I saw that my own feelings had prepared my
- sufferings, and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led me
- to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been entirely brought on by
- myself by such negligence of my own health, as I had felt even at the
- time to be wrong. Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
- did not know my danger till the danger was removed; but with such
- feelings as these reflections gave me, I wonder at my recovery,--wonder
- that the very eagerness of my desire to live, to have time for
- atonement to my God, and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I
- died,--in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse, my
- friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful selfishness of my
- latter days; who had known all the murmurings of my heart!--How should
- I have lived in YOUR remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have
- consoled her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself. Whenever
- I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected, or some failing
- indulged. Every body seemed injured by me. The kindness, the
- unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings, I had repaid with ungrateful
- contempt. To the Middletons, to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every
- common acquaintance even, I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart
- hardened against their merits, and a temper irritated by their very
- attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them, little as they
- deserve, I had given less than their due. But you,--you above all,
- above my mother, had been wronged by me. I, and only I, knew your
- heart and its sorrows; yet to what did it influence me?--not to any
- compassion that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was before
- me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate of you and your comfort?
- Did I imitate your forbearance, or lessen your restraints, by taking
- any part in those offices of general complaisance or particular
- gratitude which you had hitherto been left to discharge
- alone?--No;--not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I had
- believed you at ease, did I turn away from every exertion of duty or
- friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow to exist but with me, regretting
- only THAT heart which had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for
- whom I professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my sake."
- Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit; and Elinor,
- impatient to soothe, though too honest to flatter, gave her instantly
- that praise and support which her frankness and her contrition so well
- deserved. Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
- "You are very good.--The future must be my proof. I have laid down my
- plan, and if I am capable of adhering to it--my feelings shall be
- governed and my temper improved. They shall no longer worry others,
- nor torture myself. I shall now live solely for my family. You, my
- mother, and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me; you will
- share my affections entirely between you. From you, from my home, I
- shall never again have the smallest incitement to move; and if I do mix
- in other society, it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled, my
- heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities, the lesser
- duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance. As for Willoughby--to
- say that I shall soon or that I shall ever forget him, would be idle.
- His remembrance can be overcome by no change of circumstances or
- opinions. But it shall be regulated, it shall be checked by religion,
- by reason, by constant employment."
- She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could but know HIS heart,
- everything would become easy."
- Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting on the propriety or
- impropriety of speedily hazarding her narration, without feeling at all
- nearer decision than at first, heard this; and perceiving that as
- reflection did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
- leading to the fact.
- She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address; prepared her
- anxious listener with caution; related simply and honestly the chief
- points on which Willoughby grounded his apology; did justice to his
- repentance, and softened only his protestations of present regard.
- Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes were fixed on the
- ground, and her lips became whiter than even sickness had left them. A
- thousand inquiries sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge
- one. She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
- unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and tears covered
- her cheeks.
- Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home; and till they
- reached the door of the cottage, easily conjecturing what her curiosity
- must be though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of nothing
- but Willoughby, and their conversation together; and was carefully
- minute in every particular of speech and look, where minuteness could
- be safely indulged. As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a
- kiss of gratitude and these two words just articulate through her
- tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and walked slowly up
- stairs. Elinor would not attempt to disturb a solitude so reasonable
- as what she now sought; and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its
- result, and a resolution of reviving the subject again, should Marianne
- fail to do it, she turned into the parlour to fulfill her parting
- injunction.
- CHAPTER 47
- Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication of her former
- favourite. She rejoiced in his being cleared from some part of his
- imputed guilt;--she was sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the
- feelings of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore him
- with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished, to Marianne. Nothing
- could do away the knowledge of what the latter had suffered through his
- means, nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza. Nothing
- could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem, nor injure the
- interests of Colonel Brandon.
- Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's story from
- himself--had she witnessed his distress, and been under the influence
- of his countenance and his manner, it is probable that her compassion
- would have been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power, nor in
- her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her retailed
- explanation, as had at first been called forth in herself. Reflection
- had given calmness to her judgment, and sobered her own opinion of
- Willoughby's deserts;--she wished, therefore, to declare only the
- simple truth, and lay open such facts as were really due to his
- character, without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the fancy
- astray.
- In the evening, when they were all three together, Marianne began
- voluntarily to speak of him again;--but that it was not without an
- effort, the restless, unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for
- some time previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--and her
- unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
- "I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see every thing--as you
- can desire me to do."
- Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly with soothing
- tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished to hear her sister's
- unbiased opinion, by an eager sign, engaged her silence. Marianne
- slowly continued--
- "It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told me this morning--I have
- now heard exactly what I wished to hear."--For some moments her voice
- was lost; but recovering herself, she added, and with greater calmness
- than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied, I wish for no change. I
- never could have been happy with him, after knowing, as sooner or later
- I must have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence, no
- esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
- "I know it--I know it," cried her mother. "Happy with a man of
- libertine practices!--With one who so injured the peace of the dearest
- of our friends, and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
- to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her sensitive
- conscience, would have felt all that the conscience of her husband
- ought to have felt."
- Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
- "You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as a good mind and a
- sound understanding must consider it; and I dare say you perceive, as
- well as myself, not only in this, but in many other circumstances,
- reason enough to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
- in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which you would have
- been poorly supported by an affection, on his side, much less certain.
- Had you married, you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
- acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares that
- self-denial is a word hardly understood by him. His demands and your
- inexperience together, on a small, very small income, must have brought
- on distresses which would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having
- been entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense of honour
- and honesty would have led you, I know, when aware of your situation,
- to attempt all the economy that would appear to you possible: and,
- perhaps, as long as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
- you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--and how
- little could the utmost of your single management do to stop the ruin
- which had begun before your marriage?-- Beyond THAT, had you
- endeavoured, however reasonably, to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not
- to be feared, that instead of prevailing on feelings so selfish to
- consent to it, you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
- and made him regret the connection which had involved him in such
- difficulties?"
- Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word "Selfish?" in a
- tone that implied--"do you really think him selfish?"
- "The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor, "from the beginning to
- the end of the affair, has been grounded on selfishness. It was
- selfishness which first made him sport with your affections; which
- afterwards, when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession of
- it, and which finally carried him from Barton. His own enjoyment, or
- his own ease, was, in every particular, his ruling principle."
- "It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
- "At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he has done. And why
- does he regret it?--Because he finds it has not answered towards
- himself. It has not made him happy. His circumstances are now
- unembarrassed--he suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
- that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper than yourself.
- But does it follow that had he married you, he would have been
- happy?--The inconveniences would have been different. He would then
- have suffered under the pecuniary distresses which, because they are
- removed, he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife of whose
- temper he could make no complaint, but he would have been always
- necessitous--always poor; and probably would soon have learned to rank
- the innumerable comforts of a clear estate and good income as of far
- more importance, even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a
- wife."
- "I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I have nothing to
- regret--nothing but my own folly."
- "Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child," said Mrs. Dashwood;
- "SHE must be answerable."
- Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor, satisfied that each
- felt their own error, wished to avoid any survey of the past that might
- weaken her sister's spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first
- subject, immediately continued,
- "One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from the whole of the
- story--that all Willoughby's difficulties have arisen from the first
- offence against virtue, in his behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime
- has been the origin of every lesser one, and of all his present
- discontents."
- Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark; and her mother was led
- by it to an enumeration of Colonel Brandon's injuries and merits, warm
- as friendship and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did not
- look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
- Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two or three following
- days, that Marianne did not continue to gain strength as she had done;
- but while her resolution was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear
- cheerful and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect of time
- upon her health.
- Margaret returned, and the family were again all restored to each
- other, again quietly settled at the cottage; and if not pursuing their
- usual studies with quite so much vigour as when they first came to
- Barton, at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
- Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward. She had heard
- nothing of him since her leaving London, nothing new of his plans,
- nothing certain even of his present abode. Some letters had passed
- between her and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness; and
- in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:-- "We know
- nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no enquiries on so
- prohibited a subject, but conclude him to be still at Oxford;" which
- was all the intelligence of Edward afforded her by the correspondence,
- for his name was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
- She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of his measures.
- Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter on business; and
- when, as he waited at table, he had satisfied the inquiries of his
- mistress as to the event of his errand, this was his voluntary
- communication--
- "I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
- Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes upon Elinor, saw her
- turning pale, and fell back in her chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood,
- whose eyes, as she answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively
- taken the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
- countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment afterwards,
- alike distressed by Marianne's situation, knew not on which child to
- bestow her principal attention.
- The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was taken ill, had sense
- enough to call one of the maids, who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance,
- supported her into the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather
- better, and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret and the
- maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still much disordered, had so far
- recovered the use of her reason and voice as to be just beginning an
- inquiry of Thomas, as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
- immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor had the
- benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
- "Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
- "I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning in Exeter, and his lady
- too, Miss Steele as was. They was stopping in a chaise at the door of
- the New London Inn, as I went there with a message from Sally at the
- Park to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened to look up
- as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly it was the youngest Miss
- Steele; so I took off my hat, and she knew me and called to me, and
- inquired after you, ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss
- Marianne, and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
- their best compliments and service, and how sorry they was they had not
- time to come on and see you, but they was in a great hurry to go
- forwards, for they was going further down for a little while, but
- howsever, when they come back, they'd make sure to come and see you."
- "But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
- "Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she had changed her name since
- she was in these parts. She was always a very affable and free-spoken
- young lady, and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
- "Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
- "Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it, but he did not look
- up;--he never was a gentleman much for talking."
- Elinor's heart could easily account for his not putting himself
- forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably found the same explanation.
- "Was there no one else in the carriage?"
- "No, ma'am, only they two."
- "Do you know where they came from?"
- "They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--Mrs. Ferrars told me."
- "And are they going farther westward?"
- "Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon be back again, and
- then they'd be sure and call here."
- Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter; but Elinor knew better than
- to expect them. She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and
- was very confident that Edward would never come near them. She
- observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they were probably going
- down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
- Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked as if she wished to
- hear more.
- "Did you see them off, before you came away?"
- "No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I could not bide any
- longer; I was afraid of being late."
- "Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
- "Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well; and to my mind she was
- always a very handsome young lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
- Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question, and Thomas and the
- tablecloth, now alike needless, were soon afterwards dismissed.
- Marianne had already sent to say, that she should eat nothing more.
- Mrs. Dashwood's and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
- might think herself very well off, that with so much uneasiness as both
- her sisters had lately experienced, so much reason as they had often
- had to be careless of their meals, she had never been obliged to go
- without her dinner before.
- When the dessert and the wine were arranged, and Mrs. Dashwood and
- Elinor were left by themselves, they remained long together in a
- similarity of thoughtfulness and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to
- hazard any remark, and ventured not to offer consolation. She now
- found that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation of
- herself; and justly concluded that every thing had been expressly
- softened at the time, to spare her from an increase of unhappiness,
- suffering as she then had suffered for Marianne. She found that she
- had been misled by the careful, the considerate attention of her
- daughter, to think the attachment, which once she had so well
- understood, much slighter in reality, than she had been wont to
- believe, or than it was now proved to be. She feared that under this
- persuasion she had been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her
- Elinor;--that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged, more
- immediately before her, had too much engrossed her tenderness, and led
- her away to forget that in Elinor she might have a daughter suffering
- almost as much, certainly with less self-provocation, and greater
- fortitude.
- CHAPTER 48
- Elinor now found the difference between the expectation of an
- unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told to consider it,
- and certainty itself. She now found, that in spite of herself, she had
- always admitted a hope, while Edward remained single, that something
- would occur to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of his
- own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible opportunity of
- establishment for the lady, would arise to assist the happiness of all.
- But he was now married; and she condemned her heart for the lurking
- flattery, which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
- That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined) he could be in
- orders, and consequently before he could be in possession of the
- living, surprised her a little at first. But she soon saw how likely
- it was that Lucy, in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure
- him, should overlook every thing but the risk of delay. They were
- married, married in town, and now hastening down to her uncle's. What
- had Edward felt on being within four miles from Barton, on seeing her
- mother's servant, on hearing Lucy's message!
- They would soon, she supposed, be settled at Delaford.--Delaford,--that
- place in which so much conspired to give her an interest; which she
- wished to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid. She saw them
- in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw in Lucy, the active,
- contriving manager, uniting at once a desire of smart appearance with
- the utmost frugality, and ashamed to be suspected of half her
- economical practices;--pursuing her own interest in every thought,
- courting the favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
- wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw, nor what she
- wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing pleased her; she turned away
- her head from every sketch of him.
- Elinor flattered herself that some one of their connections in London
- would write to them to announce the event, and give farther
- particulars,--but day after day passed off, and brought no letter, no
- tidings. Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found fault
- with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless or indolent.
- "When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?" was an inquiry which
- sprung from the impatience of her mind to have something going on.
- "I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather expect to see, than to
- hear from him again. I earnestly pressed his coming to us, and should
- not be surprised to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
- This was gaining something, something to look forward to. Colonel
- Brandon must have some information to give.
- Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure of a man on
- horseback drew her eyes to the window. He stopt at their gate. It was
- a gentleman, it was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
- and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was NOT Colonel
- Brandon--neither his air--nor his height. Were it possible, she must
- say it must be Edward. She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she
- could not be mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
- "He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be calm; I WILL
- be mistress of myself."
- In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise aware of the
- mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne change colour; saw them look
- at herself, and whisper a few sentences to each other. She would have
- given the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand that
- she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear in their behaviour to
- him;--but she had no utterance, and was obliged to leave all to their
- own discretion.
- Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited in silence for the
- appearance of their visitor. His footsteps were heard along the gravel
- path; in a moment he was in the passage, and in another he was before
- them.
- His countenance, as he entered the room, was not too happy, even for
- Elinor. His complexion was white with agitation, and he looked as if
- fearful of his reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
- Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted, to the wishes of
- that daughter, by whom she then meant in the warmth of her heart to be
- guided in every thing, met with a look of forced complacency, gave him
- her hand, and wished him joy.
- He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply. Elinor's lips
- had moved with her mother's, and, when the moment of action was over,
- she wished that she had shaken hands with him too. But it was then too
- late, and with a countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again and
- talked of the weather.
- Marianne had retreated as much as possible out of sight, to conceal her
- distress; and Margaret, understanding some part, but not the whole of
- the case, thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
- took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained a strict
- silence.
- When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness of the season, a very
- awful pause took place. It was put an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who
- felt obliged to hope that he had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a
- hurried manner, he replied in the affirmative.
- Another pause.
- Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing the sound of her own
- voice, now said,
- "Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
- "At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.-- "No, my mother
- is in town."
- "I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from the table, "to inquire
- for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
- She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both turned their
- eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed, looked doubtingly, and,
- after some hesitation, said,--
- "Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs. ROBERT Ferrars."
- "Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her mother in an
- accent of the utmost amazement;--and though Elinor could not speak,
- even HER eyes were fixed on him with the same impatient wonder. He
- rose from his seat, and walked to the window, apparently from not
- knowing what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there, and
- while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting the latter to
- pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
- "Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard that my brother is
- lately married to--to the youngest--to Miss Lucy Steele."
- His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment by all but Elinor,
- who sat with her head leaning over her work, in a state of such
- agitation as made her hardly know where she was.
- "Yes," said he, "they were married last week, and are now at Dawlish."
- Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran out of the room, and as
- soon as the door was closed, burst into tears of joy, which at first
- she thought would never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any
- where, rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--or even
- heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards he fell into a reverie,
- which no remarks, no inquiries, no affectionate address of Mrs.
- Dashwood could penetrate, and at last, without saying a word, quitted
- the room, and walked out towards the village--leaving the others in the
- greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change in his situation, so
- wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity which they had no means of
- lessening but by their own conjectures.
- CHAPTER 49
- Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his release might
- appear to the whole family, it was certain that Edward was free; and to
- what purpose that freedom would be employed was easily pre-determined
- by all;--for after experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent
- engagement, contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
- done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected of him in
- the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction of another.
- His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one. It was only to ask
- Elinor to marry him;--and considering that he was not altogether
- inexperienced in such a question, it might be strange that he should
- feel so uncomfortable in the present case as he really did, so much in
- need of encouragement and fresh air.
- How soon he had walked himself into the proper resolution, however, how
- soon an opportunity of exercising it occurred, in what manner he
- expressed himself, and how he was received, need not be particularly
- told. This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to table at
- four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival, he had secured his
- lady, engaged her mother's consent, and was not only in the rapturous
- profession of the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth, one
- of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was more than commonly
- joyful. He had more than the ordinary triumph of accepted love to
- swell his heart, and raise his spirits. He was released without any
- reproach to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed his
- misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--and elevated at
- once to that security with another, which he must have thought of
- almost with despair, as soon as he had learnt to consider it with
- desire. He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from misery to
- happiness;--and the change was openly spoken in such a genuine,
- flowing, grateful cheerfulness, as his friends had never witnessed in
- him before.
- His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses, all its errors
- confessed, and his first boyish attachment to Lucy treated with all the
- philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
- "It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side," said he, "the
- consequence of ignorance of the world--and want of employment. Had my
- mother given me some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
- from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure, it would never
- have happened; for though I left Longstaple with what I thought, at the
- time, a most unconquerable preference for his niece, yet had I then had
- any pursuit, any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
- from her for a few months, I should very soon have outgrown the fancied
- attachment, especially by mixing more with the world, as in such case I
- must have done. But instead of having any thing to do, instead of
- having any profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any
- myself, I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
- twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment, which
- belonging to the university would have given me; for I was not entered
- at Oxford till I was nineteen. I had therefore nothing in the world to
- do, but to fancy myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
- in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend, no companion in my
- brother, and disliked new acquaintance, it was not unnatural for me to
- be very often at Longstaple, where I always felt myself at home, and
- was always sure of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
- of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared everything
- that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty too--at least I thought
- so THEN; and I had seen so little of other women, that I could make no
- comparisons, and see no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I
- hope, foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since in every
- way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural or an inexcusable
- piece of folly."
- The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds and the happiness
- of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as promised them all, the
- satisfaction of a sleepless night. Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be
- comfortable, knew not how to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how
- to be enough thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
- nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained conversation
- together, and yet enjoy, as she wished, the sight and society of both.
- Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears. Comparisons would
- occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy, though sincere as her love
- for her sister, was of a kind to give her neither spirits nor language.
- But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From the moment of
- learning that Lucy was married to another, that Edward was free, to the
- moment of his justifying the hopes which had so instantly followed, she
- was every thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment had
- passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude removed, compared
- her situation with what so lately it had been,--saw him honourably
- released from his former engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the
- release, to address herself and declare an affection as tender, as
- constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she was oppressed, she was
- overcome by her own felicity;--and happily disposed as is the human
- mind to be easily familiarized with any change for the better, it
- required several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any degree
- of tranquillity to her heart.
- Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for a week;--for whatever
- other claims might be made on him, it was impossible that less than a
- week should be given up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or
- suffice to say half that was to be said of the past, the present, and
- the future;--for though a very few hours spent in the hard labor of
- incessant talking will despatch more subjects than can really be in
- common between any two rational creatures, yet with lovers it is
- different. Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication is
- even made, till it has been made at least twenty times over.
- Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder among them all,
- formed of course one of the earliest discussions of the lovers;--and
- Elinor's particular knowledge of each party made it appear to her in
- every view, as one of the most extraordinary and unaccountable
- circumstances she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
- and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry a girl, of
- whose beauty she had herself heard him speak without any admiration,--a
- girl too already engaged to his brother, and on whose account that
- brother had been thrown off by his family--it was beyond her
- comprehension to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful
- affair, to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but to her
- reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
- Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing, that, perhaps,
- at first accidentally meeting, the vanity of the one had been so worked
- on by the flattery of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
- Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street, of his
- opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's affairs might have
- done, if applied to in time. She repeated it to Edward.
- "THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate observation.--"And
- THAT," he presently added, "might perhaps be in HIS head when the
- acquaintance between them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
- think only of procuring his good offices in my favour. Other designs
- might afterward arise."
- How long it had been carrying on between them, however, he was equally
- at a loss with herself to make out; for at Oxford, where he had
- remained for choice ever since his quitting London, he had had no means
- of hearing of her but from herself, and her letters to the very last
- were neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual. Not the
- smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred to prepare him for
- what followed;--and when at last it burst on him in a letter from Lucy
- herself, he had been for some time, he believed, half stupified between
- the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance. He put the
- letter into Elinor's hands.
- "DEAR SIR,
- "Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
- I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
- on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
- him as I once used to think I might be with you;
- but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
- another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
- and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
- good friends, as our near relationship now makes
- proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
- and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
- ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
- entirely, and as we could not live without one
- another, we are just returned from the altar, and
- are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
- place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
- but thought I would first trouble you with these
- few lines, and shall always remain,
- "Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
- "LUCY FERRARS.
- "I have burnt all your letters, and will return
- your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
- my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
- welcome to keep."
- Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
- "I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition," said
- Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter of hers seen by YOU
- in former days.--In a sister it is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I
- have blushed over the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say
- that since the first half year of our foolish--business--this is the
- only letter I ever received from her, of which the substance made me
- any amends for the defect of the style."
- "However it may have come about," said Elinor, after a pause,--"they
- are certainly married. And your mother has brought on herself a most
- appropriate punishment. The independence she settled on Robert,
- through resentment against you, has put it in his power to make his own
- choice; and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
- a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the other for
- intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt, I suppose, by Robert's
- marrying Lucy, than she would have been by your marrying her."
- "She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always was her favourite.--She
- will be more hurt by it, and on the same principle will forgive him
- much sooner."
- In what state the affair stood at present between them, Edward knew
- not, for no communication with any of his family had yet been attempted
- by him. He had quitted Oxford within four and twenty hours after
- Lucy's letter arrived, and with only one object before him, the nearest
- road to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct, with
- which that road did not hold the most intimate connection. He could do
- nothing till he were assured of his fate with Miss Dashwood; and by his
- rapidity in seeking THAT fate, it is to be supposed, in spite of the
- jealousy with which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite of
- the modesty with which he rated his own deserts, and the politeness
- with which he talked of his doubts, he did not, upon the whole, expect
- a very cruel reception. It was his business, however, to say that he
- DID, and he said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject a
- twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination of husbands and
- wives.
- That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off with a flourish of
- malice against him in her message by Thomas, was perfectly clear to
- Elinor; and Edward himself, now thoroughly enlightened on her
- character, had no scruple in believing her capable of the utmost
- meanness of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
- even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her ignorance and a
- want of liberality in some of her opinions--they had been equally
- imputed, by him, to her want of education; and till her last letter
- reached him, he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
- good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself. Nothing but
- such a persuasion could have prevented his putting an end to an
- engagement, which, long before the discovery of it laid him open to his
- mother's anger, had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to
- him.
- "I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings, to give
- her the option of continuing the engagement or not, when I was
- renounced by my mother, and stood to all appearance without a friend in
- the world to assist me. In such a situation as that, where there
- seemed nothing to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living
- creature, how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly
- insisted on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing but
- the most disinterested affection was her inducement? And even now, I
- cannot comprehend on what motive she acted, or what fancied advantage
- it could be to her, to be fettered to a man for whom she had not the
- smallest regard, and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
- She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
- "No; but she might suppose that something would occur in your favour;
- that your own family might in time relent. And at any rate, she lost
- nothing by continuing the engagement, for she has proved that it
- fettered neither her inclination nor her actions. The connection was
- certainly a respectable one, and probably gained her consideration
- among her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred, it would
- be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
- Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that nothing could have
- been more natural than Lucy's conduct, nor more self-evident than the
- motive of it.
- Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold the imprudence which
- compliments themselves, for having spent so much time with them at
- Norland, when he must have felt his own inconstancy.
- "Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she; "because--to say
- nothing of my own conviction, our relations were all led away by it to
- fancy and expect WHAT, as you were THEN situated, could never be."
- He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart, and a mistaken
- confidence in the force of his engagement.
- "I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH was plighted to
- another, there could be no danger in my being with you; and that the
- consciousness of my engagement was to keep my heart as safe and sacred
- as my honour. I felt that I admired you, but I told myself it was only
- friendship; and till I began to make comparisons between yourself and
- Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that, I suppose, I WAS
- wrong in remaining so much in Sussex, and the arguments with which I
- reconciled myself to the expediency of it, were no better than
- these:--The danger is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but
- myself."
- Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
- Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's being expected at the
- Cottage, as he really wished not only to be better acquainted with him,
- but to have an opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
- his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present," said he,
- "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine were on the occasion,
- he must think I have never forgiven him for offering."
- NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet been to the place.
- But so little interest had he taken in the matter, that he owed all his
- knowledge of the house, garden, and glebe, extent of the parish,
- condition of the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself, who
- had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard it with so much
- attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
- One question after this only remained undecided, between them, one
- difficulty only was to be overcome. They were brought together by
- mutual affection, with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
- their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make their happiness
- certain--and they only wanted something to live upon. Edward had two
- thousand pounds, and Elinor one, which, with Delaford living, was all
- that they could call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs.
- Dashwood should advance anything; and they were neither of them quite
- enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty pounds a-year
- would supply them with the comforts of life.
- Edward was not entirely without hopes of some favourable change in his
- mother towards him; and on THAT he rested for the residue of their
- income. But Elinor had no such dependence; for since Edward would
- still be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself had been
- spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language as only a lesser evil
- than his chusing Lucy Steele, she feared that Robert's offence would
- serve no other purpose than to enrich Fanny.
- About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel Brandon appeared, to
- complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction, and to give her the dignity of
- having, for the first time since her living at Barton, more company
- with her than her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
- privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore walked every
- night to his old quarters at the Park; from whence he usually returned
- in the morning, early enough to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete
- before breakfast.
- A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where, in his evening hours at
- least, he had little to do but to calculate the disproportion between
- thirty-six and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
- which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks, all the kindness
- of her welcome, and all the encouragement of her mother's language, to
- make it cheerful. Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he
- did revive. No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
- nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his visit were
- consequently spent in hearing and in wondering. Every thing was
- explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood, and he found fresh reason to rejoice
- in what he had done for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the
- interest of Elinor.
- It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced in the good
- opinion of each other, as they advanced in each other's acquaintance,
- for it could not be otherwise. Their resemblance in good principles
- and good sense, in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
- have been sufficient to unite them in friendship, without any other
- attraction; but their being in love with two sisters, and two sisters
- fond of each other, made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
- which might otherwise have waited the effect of time and judgment.
- The letters from town, which a few days before would have made every
- nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport, now arrived to be read
- with less emotion than mirth. Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the
- wonderful tale, to vent her honest indignation against the jilting
- girl, and pour forth her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she
- was sure, had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now, by all
- accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.-- "I do think," she
- continued, "nothing was ever carried on so sly; for it was but two days
- before Lucy called and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul
- suspected anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul! came
- crying to me the day after, in a great fright for fear of Mrs. Ferrars,
- as well as not knowing how to get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems
- borrowed all her money before she went off to be married, on purpose we
- suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not seven shillings in
- the world;--so I was very glad to give her five guineas to take her
- down to Exeter, where she thinks of staying three or four weeks with
- Mrs. Burgess, in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor
- again. And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them along
- with them in the chaise is worse than all. Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot
- get him out of my head, but you must send for him to Barton, and Miss
- Marianne must try to comfort him."
- Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn. Mrs. Ferrars was the most
- unfortunate of women--poor Fanny had suffered agonies of
- sensibility--and he considered the existence of each, under such a
- blow, with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable, but
- Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were ever again to be
- mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even, if she might hereafter be induced
- to forgive her son, his wife should never be acknowledged as her
- daughter, nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy with
- which everything had been carried on between them, was rationally
- treated as enormously heightening the crime, because, had any suspicion
- of it occurred to the others, proper measures would have been taken to
- prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join with him in
- regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward had not rather been
- fulfilled, than that she should thus be the means of spreading misery
- farther in the family.-- He thus continued:
- "Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name, which does not
- surprise us; but, to our great astonishment, not a line has been
- received from him on the occasion. Perhaps, however, he is kept silent
- by his fear of offending, and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a
- line to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter of proper
- submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny, and by her shewn to
- her mother, might not be taken amiss; for we all know the tenderness of
- Mrs. Ferrars's heart, and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be
- on good terms with her children."
- This paragraph was of some importance to the prospects and conduct of
- Edward. It determined him to attempt a reconciliation, though not
- exactly in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
- "A letter of proper submission!" repeated he; "would they have me beg
- my mother's pardon for Robert's ingratitude to HER, and breach of
- honour to ME?--I can make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
- penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy; but that would not
- interest.--I know of no submission that IS proper for me to make."
- "You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor, "because you have
- offended;--and I should think you might NOW venture so far as to
- profess some concern for having ever formed the engagement which drew
- on you your mother's anger."
- He agreed that he might.
- "And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility may be
- convenient while acknowledging a second engagement, almost as imprudent
- in HER eyes as the first."
- He had nothing to urge against it, but still resisted the idea of a
- letter of proper submission; and therefore, to make it easier to him,
- as he declared a much greater willingness to make mean concessions by
- word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that, instead of writing
- to Fanny, he should go to London, and personally intreat her good
- offices in his favour.-- "And if they really DO interest themselves,"
- said Marianne, in her new character of candour, "in bringing about a
- reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny are not entirely
- without merit."
- After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three or four days, the
- two gentlemen quitted Barton together.-- They were to go immediately to
- Delaford, that Edward might have some personal knowledge of his future
- home, and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what improvements
- were needed to it; and from thence, after staying there a couple of
- nights, he was to proceed on his journey to town.
- CHAPTER 50
- After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars, just so violent
- and so steady as to preserve her from that reproach which she always
- seemed fearful of incurring, the reproach of being too amiable, Edward
- was admitted to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
- Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating. For many years of
- her life she had had two sons; but the crime and annihilation of Edward
- a few weeks ago, had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of
- Robert had left her for a fortnight without any; and now, by the
- resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
- In spite of his being allowed once more to live, however, he did not
- feel the continuance of his existence secure, till he had revealed his
- present engagement; for the publication of that circumstance, he
- feared, might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry him off
- as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution therefore it was
- revealed, and he was listened to with unexpected calmness. Mrs.
- Ferrars at first reasonably endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying
- Miss Dashwood, by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss
- Morton he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--and
- enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton was the daughter
- of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds, while Miss Dashwood was only
- the daughter of a private gentleman with no more than THREE; but when
- she found that, though perfectly admitting the truth of her
- representation, he was by no means inclined to be guided by it, she
- judged it wisest, from the experience of the past, to submit--and
- therefore, after such an ungracious delay as she owed to her own
- dignity, and as served to prevent every suspicion of good-will, she
- issued her decree of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
- What she would engage to do towards augmenting their income was next to
- be considered; and here it plainly appeared, that though Edward was now
- her only son, he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
- inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year, not the smallest
- objection was made against Edward's taking orders for the sake of two
- hundred and fifty at the utmost; nor was anything promised either for
- the present or in future, beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had
- been given with Fanny.
- It was as much, however, as was desired, and more than was expected, by
- Edward and Elinor; and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
- seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
- With an income quite sufficient to their wants thus secured to them,
- they had nothing to wait for after Edward was in possession of the
- living, but the readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon, with
- an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor, was making
- considerable improvements; and after waiting some time for their
- completion, after experiencing, as usual, a thousand disappointments
- and delays from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
- as usual, broke through the first positive resolution of not marrying
- till every thing was ready, and the ceremony took place in Barton
- church early in the autumn.
- The first month after their marriage was spent with their friend at the
- Mansion-house; from whence they could superintend the progress of the
- Parsonage, and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--could
- chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep. Mrs. Jennings's
- prophecies, though rather jumbled together, were chiefly fulfilled; for
- she was able to visit Edward and his wife in their Parsonage by
- Michaelmas, and she found in Elinor and her husband, as she really
- believed, one of the happiest couples in the world. They had in fact
- nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel Brandon and Marianne,
- and rather better pasturage for their cows.
- They were visited on their first settling by almost all their relations
- and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came to inspect the happiness which she was
- almost ashamed of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at the
- expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
- "I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister," said John, as
- they were walking together one morning before the gates of Delaford
- House, "THAT would be saying too much, for certainly you have been one
- of the most fortunate young women in the world, as it is. But, I
- confess, it would give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon
- brother. His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
- such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I have not
- seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there is now standing in
- Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps, Marianne may not seem exactly
- the person to attract him--yet I think it would altogether be advisable
- for you to have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
- Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what may
- happen--for, when people are much thrown together, and see little of
- anybody else--and it will always be in your power to set her off to
- advantage, and so forth;--in short, you may as well give her a
- chance--You understand me."--
- But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always treated them
- with the make-believe of decent affection, they were never insulted by
- her real favour and preference. THAT was due to the folly of Robert,
- and the cunning of his wife; and it was earned by them before many
- months had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter, which had
- at first drawn Robert into the scrape, was the principal instrument of
- his deliverance from it; for her respectful humility, assiduous
- attentions, and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening was
- given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars to his choice, and
- re-established him completely in her favour.
- The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair, and the prosperity which
- crowned it, therefore, may be held forth as a most encouraging instance
- of what an earnest, an unceasing attention to self-interest, however
- its progress may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
- advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time and
- conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance, and privately
- visited her in Bartlett's Buildings, it was only with the view imputed
- to him by his brother. He merely meant to persuade her to give up the
- engagement; and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
- of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews would settle
- the matter. In that point, however, and that only, he erred;--for
- though Lucy soon gave him hopes that his eloquence would convince her
- in TIME, another visit, another conversation, was always wanted to
- produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered in her mind when
- they parted, which could only be removed by another half hour's
- discourse with himself. His attendance was by this means secured, and
- the rest followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward, they came
- gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject on which he had always
- more to say than on any other, and in which she soon betrayed an
- interest even equal to his own; and in short, it became speedily
- evident to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother. He was
- proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward, and very proud of
- marrying privately without his mother's consent. What immediately
- followed is known. They passed some months in great happiness at
- Dawlish; for she had many relations and old acquaintances to cut--and
- he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--and from thence
- returning to town, procured the forgiveness of Mrs. Ferrars, by the
- simple expedient of asking it, which, at Lucy's instigation, was
- adopted. The forgiveness, at first, indeed, as was reasonable,
- comprehended only Robert; and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and
- therefore could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
- longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct and
- messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence, and gratitude for
- the unkindness she was treated with, procured her in time the haughty
- notice which overcame her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards,
- by rapid degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
- Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert or Fanny;
- and while Edward was never cordially forgiven for having once intended
- to marry her, and Elinor, though superior to her in fortune and birth,
- was spoken of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered, and
- always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child. They settled in
- town, received very liberal assistance from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the
- best terms imaginable with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the
- jealousies and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
- in which their husbands of course took a part, as well as the frequent
- domestic disagreements between Robert and Lucy themselves, nothing
- could exceed the harmony in which they all lived together.
- What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest son, might have
- puzzled many people to find out; and what Robert had done to succeed to
- it, might have puzzled them still more. It was an arrangement,
- however, justified in its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing
- ever appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give a
- suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income, as either leaving
- his brother too little, or bringing himself too much;--and if Edward
- might be judged from the ready discharge of his duties in every
- particular, from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home, and
- from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits, he might be supposed no
- less contented with his lot, no less free from every wish of an
- exchange.
- Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her family as could well
- be contrived, without rendering the cottage at Barton entirely useless,
- for her mother and sisters spent much more than half their time with
- her. Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well as pleasure
- in the frequency of her visits at Delaford; for her wish of bringing
- Marianne and Colonel Brandon together was hardly less earnest, though
- rather more liberal than what John had expressed. It was now her
- darling object. Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
- she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant enjoyment to her
- valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at the mansion-house was
- equally the wish of Edward and Elinor. They each felt his sorrows, and
- their own obligations, and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the
- reward of all.
- With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge so intimate of
- his goodness--with a conviction of his fond attachment to herself,
- which at last, though long after it was observable to everybody
- else--burst on her--what could she do?
- Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate. She was born to
- discover the falsehood of her own opinions, and to counteract, by her
- conduct, her most favourite maxims. She was born to overcome an
- affection formed so late in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
- superior to strong esteem and lively friendship, voluntarily to give
- her hand to another!--and THAT other, a man who had suffered no less
- than herself under the event of a former attachment, whom, two years
- before, she had considered too old to be married,--and who still sought
- the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
- But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice to an irresistible
- passion, as once she had fondly flattered herself with expecting,--instead
- of remaining even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
- pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her more calm and
- sober judgment she had determined on,--she found herself at nineteen,
- submitting to new attachments, entering on new duties, placed in a new
- home, a wife, the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
- Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best loved him,
- believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he was consoled for every past
- affliction;--her regard and her society restored his mind to animation,
- and his spirits to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own
- happiness in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight of
- each observing friend. Marianne could never love by halves; and her
- whole heart became, in time, as much devoted to her husband, as it had
- once been to Willoughby.
- Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without a pang; and his
- punishment was soon afterwards complete in the voluntary forgiveness of
- Mrs. Smith, who, by stating his marriage with a woman of character, as
- the source of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
- behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have been happy
- and rich. That his repentance of misconduct, which thus brought its
- own punishment, was sincere, need not be doubted;--nor that he long
- thought of Colonel Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But
- that he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society, or
- contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a broken heart, must
- not be depended on--for he did neither. He lived to exert, and
- frequently to enjoy himself. His wife was not always out of humour,
- nor his home always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
- and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable degree of
- domestic felicity.
- For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility in surviving her
- loss--he always retained that decided regard which interested him in
- every thing that befell her, and made her his secret standard of
- perfection in woman;--and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him
- in after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
- Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage, without
- attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for Sir John and Mrs.
- Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them, Margaret had reached an
- age highly suitable for dancing, and not very ineligible for being
- supposed to have a lover.
- Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant communication
- which strong family affection would naturally dictate;--and among the
- merits and the happiness of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked
- as the least considerable, that though sisters, and living almost
- within sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
- between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
- THE END
- End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Sense and Sensibility, by Jane Austen
- *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SENSE AND SENSIBILITY ***
- ***** This file should be named 161.txt or 161.zip *****
- This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/161/
- Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
- will be renamed.
- Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
- one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
- (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
- permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
- set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
- copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
- protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
- Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
- charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
- do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
- rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
- such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
- research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
- practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
- subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
- redistribution.
- *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
- THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
- PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
- To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
- distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
- (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
- http://gutenberg.net/license).
- Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works
- 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
- and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
- (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
- the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
- all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
- If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
- terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
- entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
- 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
- used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
- agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
- things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
- paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
- and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works. See paragraph 1.E below.
- 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
- or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
- collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
- individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
- located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
- copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
- works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
- are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
- Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
- freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
- this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
- the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
- keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
- 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
- what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
- a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
- the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
- before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
- creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
- Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
- the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
- States.
- 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
- 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
- access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
- whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
- phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
- copied or distributed:
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
- 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
- from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
- posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
- and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
- or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
- with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
- work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
- through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
- Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
- 1.E.9.
- 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
- with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
- must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
- terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
- to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
- permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
- 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
- work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
- 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
- electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
- prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
- active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm License.
- 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
- compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
- word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
- distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
- "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
- posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
- you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
- copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
- request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
- form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
- performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
- unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
- access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
- that
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
- forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
- both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
- Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
- Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
- 1.F.
- 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
- effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
- public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
- collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
- "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
- property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
- computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
- your equipment.
- 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
- of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
- fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
- LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
- PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
- TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
- LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
- INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGE.
- 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
- defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
- receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
- written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
- received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
- your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
- the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
- refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
- providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
- receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
- is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
- opportunities to fix the problem.
- 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
- in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
- WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
- 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
- warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
- If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
- law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
- interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
- the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
- provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
- 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
- trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
- providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
- with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
- promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
- harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
- that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
- or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
- work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
- Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
- Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
- Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
- electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
- including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
- because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
- people in all walks of life.
- Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
- assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
- goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
- remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
- and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
- To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
- and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
- and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
- Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
- Foundation
- The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
- 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
- state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
- Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
- number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
- http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
- permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
- The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
- Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
- throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
- 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
- business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
- information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
- page at http://pglaf.org
- For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
- Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
- spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
- increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
- freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
- array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
- ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
- status with the IRS.
- The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
- charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
- States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
- considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
- with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
- where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
- SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
- particular state visit http://pglaf.org
- While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
- have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
- against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
- approach us with offers to donate.
- International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
- any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
- outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
- Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
- methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
- ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
- donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
- Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works.
- Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
- concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
- with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
- Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
- Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
- editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
- unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
- keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
- Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
- http://www.gutenberg.net
- This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
- including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
- subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.